]> git.ipfire.org Git - thirdparty/gcc.git/blob - libgo/go/compress/testdata/Mark.Twain-Tom.Sawyer.txt
libgo: Update to current sources.
[thirdparty/gcc.git] / libgo / go / compress / testdata / Mark.Twain-Tom.Sawyer.txt
1 The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, Complete
2 by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
3
4 This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
5 almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
6 re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
7 with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
8
9
10 Title: The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, Complete
11
12 Author: Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
13
14 Release Date: August 20, 2006 [EBook #74]
15 [Last updated: May 3, 2011]
16
17 Language: English
18
19
20 *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TOM SAWYER ***
21
22
23
24
25 Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
26 Menendez.
27
28
29
30
31
32 THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
33 BY
34 MARK TWAIN
35 (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
36
37
38
39
40 P R E F A C E
41
42 MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
43 two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
44 schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
45 not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
46 three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
47 architecture.
48
49 The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
50 and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
51 thirty or forty years ago.
52
53 Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
54 girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
55 for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
56 they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
57 and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
58
59 THE AUTHOR.
60
61 HARTFORD, 1876.
62
63
64
65 T O M S A W Y E R
66
67
68
69 CHAPTER I
70
71 "TOM!"
72
73 No answer.
74
75 "TOM!"
76
77 No answer.
78
79 "What's gone with that boy, I wonder? You TOM!"
80
81 No answer.
82
83 The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
84 room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
85 never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
86 state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
87 service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
88 She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
89 still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
90
91 "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
92
93 She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
94 under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
95 punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
96
97 "I never did see the beat of that boy!"
98
99 She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
100 tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
101 So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
102 shouted:
103
104 "Y-o-u-u TOM!"
105
106 There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
107 seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
108
109 "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
110 there?"
111
112 "Nothing."
113
114 "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
115 truck?"
116
117 "I don't know, aunt."
118
119 "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
120 you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
121
122 The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
123
124 "My! Look behind you, aunt!"
125
126 The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
127 lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
128 disappeared over it.
129
130 His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
131 laugh.
132
133 "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
134 enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
135 fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
136 as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
137 and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
138 long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
139 can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
140 again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
141 and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
142 the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
143 us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
144 own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
145 him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
146 and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
147 that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
148 Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
149 and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
150 work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
151 Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
152 than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
153 or I'll be the ruination of the child."
154
155 Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
156 barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
157 wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
158 time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
159 work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
160 through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
161 quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
162
163 While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
164 offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
165 very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
166 many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
167 was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
168 loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
169 cunning. Said she:
170
171 "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
172
173 "Yes'm."
174
175 "Powerful warm, warn't it?"
176
177 "Yes'm."
178
179 "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
180
181 A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
182 He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
183
184 "No'm--well, not very much."
185
186 The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
187
188 "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
189 that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
190 that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
191 where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
192
193 "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
194
195 Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
196 circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
197 inspiration:
198
199 "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
200 pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
201
202 The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
203 shirt collar was securely sewed.
204
205 "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
206 and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
207 singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
208
209 She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
210 had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
211
212 But Sidney said:
213
214 "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
215 but it's black."
216
217 "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
218
219 But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
220
221 "Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
222
223 In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
224 the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
225 carried white thread and the other black. He said:
226
227 "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
228 she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
229 geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
230 I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
231
232 He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
233 well though--and loathed him.
234
235 Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
236 Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
237 than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
238 them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
239 misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
240 new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
241 acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
242 It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
243 produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
244 intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
245 to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
246 him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
247 of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
248 astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
249 strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
250 the boy, not the astronomer.
251
252 The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
253 checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
254 than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
255 curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
256 was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
257 astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
258 roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
259 on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
260 ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
261 more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
262 nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
263 to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
264 only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
265 the time. Finally Tom said:
266
267 "I can lick you!"
268
269 "I'd like to see you try it."
270
271 "Well, I can do it."
272
273 "No you can't, either."
274
275 "Yes I can."
276
277 "No you can't."
278
279 "I can."
280
281 "You can't."
282
283 "Can!"
284
285 "Can't!"
286
287 An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
288
289 "What's your name?"
290
291 "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
292
293 "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
294
295 "Well why don't you?"
296
297 "If you say much, I will."
298
299 "Much--much--MUCH. There now."
300
301 "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
302 one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
303
304 "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
305
306 "Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
307
308 "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
309
310 "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
311
312 "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
313 off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
314
315 "You're a liar!"
316
317 "You're another."
318
319 "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
320
321 "Aw--take a walk!"
322
323 "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
324 rock off'n your head."
325
326 "Oh, of COURSE you will."
327
328 "Well I WILL."
329
330 "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
331 Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
332
333 "I AIN'T afraid."
334
335 "You are."
336
337 "I ain't."
338
339 "You are."
340
341 Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
342 they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
343
344 "Get away from here!"
345
346 "Go away yourself!"
347
348 "I won't."
349
350 "I won't either."
351
352 So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
353 both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
354 hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
355 were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
356 and Tom said:
357
358 "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
359 can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
360
361 "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
362 than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
363 [Both brothers were imaginary.]
364
365 "That's a lie."
366
367 "YOUR saying so don't make it so."
368
369 Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
370
371 "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
372 up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
373
374 The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
375
376 "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
377
378 "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
379
380 "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
381
382 "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
383
384 The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
385 with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
386 were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
387 for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
388 clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
389 themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
390 through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
391 pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
392
393 The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
394
395 "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
396
397 At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
398 and said:
399
400 "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
401 time."
402
403 The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
404 snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
405 threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
406 To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
407 as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
408 it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
409 an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
410 lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
411 enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
412 window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
413 Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
414 away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
415
416 He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
417 at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
418 and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
419 his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
420 its firmness.
421
422
423
424 CHAPTER II
425
426 SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
427 fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
428 the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
429 every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
430 and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
431 the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
432 enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
433
434 Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
435 long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
436 a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
437 fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
438 burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
439 plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
440 whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
441 fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
442 the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
443 the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
444 now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
445 the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
446 waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
447 fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
448 a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
449 water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
450 him. Tom said:
451
452 "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
453
454 Jim shook his head and said:
455
456 "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
457 water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
458 Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
459 to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
460
461 "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
462 talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
463 ever know."
464
465 "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
466 me. 'Deed she would."
467
468 "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
469 thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
470 talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
471 a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
472
473 Jim began to waver.
474
475 "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
476
477 "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
478 'fraid ole missis--"
479
480 "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
481
482 Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
483 his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
484 interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
485 flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
486 whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
487 with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
488
489 But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
490 planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
491 would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
492 they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
493 thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
494 examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
495 exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
496 hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
497 pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
498 and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
499 great, magnificent inspiration.
500
501 He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
502 sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
503 dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
504 heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
505 giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
506 ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
507 he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
508 far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
509 pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
510 considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
511 captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
512 standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
513
514 "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
515 drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
516
517 "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
518 stiffened down his sides.
519
520 "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
521 Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
522 representing a forty-foot wheel.
523
524 "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
525 The left hand began to describe circles.
526
527 "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
528 on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
529 Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
530 Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
531 round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
532 go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
533 (trying the gauge-cocks).
534
535 Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
536 stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
537
538 No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
539 he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
540 before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
541 apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
542
543 "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
544
545 Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
546
547 "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
548
549 "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
550 course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
551
552 Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
553
554 "What do you call work?"
555
556 "Why, ain't THAT work?"
557
558 Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
559
560 "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
561 Sawyer."
562
563 "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
564
565 The brush continued to move.
566
567 "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
568 a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
569
570 That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
571 swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
572 effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
573 watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
574 absorbed. Presently he said:
575
576 "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
577
578 Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
579
580 "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
581 awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
582 --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
583 she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
584 careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
585 thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
586
587 "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
588 let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
589
590 "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
591 do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
592 let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
593 fence and anything was to happen to it--"
594
595 "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
596 you the core of my apple."
597
598 "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
599
600 "I'll give you ALL of it!"
601
602 Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
603 heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
604 the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
605 dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
606 innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
607 little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
608 Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
609 a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
610 for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
611 hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
612 a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
613 in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
614 part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
615 spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
616 a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
617 fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
618 dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
619 orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
620
621 He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
622 --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
623 of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
624
625 Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
626 had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
627 that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
628 necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
629 and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
630 comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
631 and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
632 this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
633 or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
634 climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
635 England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
636 on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
637 considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
638 that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
639
640 The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
641 in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
642 report.
643
644
645
646 CHAPTER III
647
648 TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
649 window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
650 breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
651 air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
652 of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
653 --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
654 spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
655 that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
656 place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
657 I go and play now, aunt?"
658
659 "What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
660
661 "It's all done, aunt."
662
663 "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
664
665 "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
666
667 Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
668 for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
669 of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
670 and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
671 a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
672 She said:
673
674 "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
675 a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
676 it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
677 and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
678
679 She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
680 him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
681 him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
682 treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
683 And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
684 doughnut.
685
686 Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
687 that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
688 the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
689 hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
690 and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
691 and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
692 thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
693 peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
694 black thread and getting him into trouble.
695
696 Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
697 the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
698 reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
699 of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
700 conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
701 these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
702 two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
703 better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
704 and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
705 aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
706 hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
707 the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
708 necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
709 marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
710
711 As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
712 girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
713 plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
714 pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
715 certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
716 memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
717 he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
718 little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
719 confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
720 boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
721 she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
722 done.
723
724 He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
725 had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
726 and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
727 win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
728 time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
729 gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
730 was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
731 leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
732 She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
733 heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
734 lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
735 before she disappeared.
736
737 The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
738 then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
739 he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
740 Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
741 nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
742 in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
743 his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
744 hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
745 only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
746 jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
747 much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
748
749 He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
750 off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
751 comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
752 window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
753 home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
754
755 All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
756 "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
757 Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
758 under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
759
760 "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
761
762 "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
763 that sugar if I warn't watching you."
764
765 Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
766 immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
767 was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
768 and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
769 controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
770 not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
771 still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
772 there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
773 "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
774 himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
775 discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
776 himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
777 the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
778 out:
779
780 "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
781
782 Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
783 when she got her tongue again, she only said:
784
785 "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
786 other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
787
788 Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
789 kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
790 confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
791 So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
792 Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
793 his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
794 consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
795 of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
796 through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
797 himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
798 one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
799 die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
800 himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
801 his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
802 her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
803 her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
804 there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
805 griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
806 of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
807 choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
808 winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
809 luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
810 to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
811 it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
812 Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
813 age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
814 clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
815 at the other.
816
817 He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
818 desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
819 river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
820 contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
821 that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
822 undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
823 of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
824 increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
825 knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
826 around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
827 the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
828 suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
829 up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
830 rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
831
832 About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
833 to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
834 upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
835 curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
836 climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
837 he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
838 then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
839 his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
840 wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
841 shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
842 death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
843 when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
844 out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
845 his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
846 young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
847
848 The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
849 holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
850
851 The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
852 as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
853 as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
854 fence and shot away in the gloom.
855
856 Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
857 drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
858 had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
859 better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
860
861 Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
862 mental note of the omission.
863
864
865
866 CHAPTER IV
867
868 THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
869 village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
870 worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
871 courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
872 originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
873 of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
874
875 Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
876 his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
877 energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
878 Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
879 At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
880 but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
881 thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
882 took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
883 the fog:
884
885 "Blessed are the--a--a--"
886
887 "Poor"--
888
889 "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
890
891 "In spirit--"
892
893 "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
894
895 "THEIRS--"
896
897 "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
898 of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
899
900 "Sh--"
901
902 "For they--a--"
903
904 "S, H, A--"
905
906 "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
907
908 "SHALL!"
909
910 "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
911 blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
912 they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
913 want to be so mean for?"
914
915 "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
916 do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
917 you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
918 There, now, that's a good boy."
919
920 "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
921
922 "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
923
924 "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
925
926 And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
927 curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
928 accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
929 knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
930 swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
931 not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
932 inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
933 the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
934 injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
935 contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
936 on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
937
938 Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
939 outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
940 dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
941 poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
942 kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
943 door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
944
945 "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
946 you."
947
948 Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
949 he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
950 breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
951 shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
952 of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
953 the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
954 short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
955 there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
956 front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
957 was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
958 color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
959 wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
960 smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
961 hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
962 his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
963 his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
964 were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
965 size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
966 himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
967 vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
968 him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
969 uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
970 was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
971 hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
972 coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
973 out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
974 everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
975
976 "Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
977
978 So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
979 children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
980 whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
981
982 Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
983 service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
984 voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
985 The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
986 hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
987 of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
988 dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
989
990 "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
991
992 "Yes."
993
994 "What'll you take for her?"
995
996 "What'll you give?"
997
998 "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
999
1000 "Less see 'em."
1001
1002 Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
1003 Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
1004 some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
1005 boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
1006 fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
1007 clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
1008 quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
1009 elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
1010 boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
1011 turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
1012 him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
1013 class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
1014 came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
1015 perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
1016 through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
1017 passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
1018 the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
1019 exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
1020 tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
1021 cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
1022 have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
1023 for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
1024 was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
1025 won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
1026 stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
1027 he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
1028 misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
1029 superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
1030 and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
1031 tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
1032 so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
1033 circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
1034 that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
1035 ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
1036 mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
1037 unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
1038 and the eclat that came with it.
1039
1040 In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
1041 a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
1042 leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
1043 makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
1044 necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
1045 who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
1046 --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
1047 music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
1048 slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
1049 he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
1050 ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
1051 mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
1052 of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
1053 on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
1054 and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
1055 fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
1056 laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
1057 pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
1058 of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
1059 things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
1060 matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
1061 acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
1062 began after this fashion:
1063
1064 "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
1065 as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
1066 --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
1067 one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
1068 thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
1069 a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
1070 how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
1071 assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
1072 so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
1073 oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
1074 to us all.
1075
1076 The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
1077 and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
1078 and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
1079 of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
1080 sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
1081 the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
1082 gratitude.
1083
1084 A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
1085 was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
1086 accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
1087 gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
1088 the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
1089 and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
1090 not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
1091 when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
1092 a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
1093 --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
1094 that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
1095 exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
1096 angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
1097 the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
1098
1099 The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
1100 Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
1101 middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
1102 than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
1103 children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
1104 he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
1105 afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
1106 he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
1107 the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
1108 which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
1109 and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
1110 brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
1111 be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
1112 have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
1113
1114 "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
1115 shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
1116 wish you was Jeff?"
1117
1118 Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
1119 bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
1120 discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
1121 target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
1122 arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
1123 insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
1124 --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
1125 pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
1126 lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
1127 scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
1128 discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
1129 at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
1130 to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
1131 The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
1132 "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
1133 and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
1134 beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
1135 in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
1136
1137 There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
1138 complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
1139 prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
1140 --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
1141 worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
1142
1143 And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
1144 with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
1145 demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
1146 was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
1147 years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
1148 checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
1149 to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
1150 announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
1151 decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
1152 up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
1153 gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
1154 those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
1155 late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
1156 trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
1157 whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
1158 of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
1159
1160 The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
1161 superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
1162 somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
1163 that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
1164 perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
1165 thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
1166 strain his capacity, without a doubt.
1167
1168 Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
1169 her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
1170 troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
1171 a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
1172 jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
1173 most of all (she thought).
1174
1175 Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
1176 would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
1177 greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
1178 have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
1179 Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
1180 asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
1181
1182 "Tom."
1183
1184 "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
1185
1186 "Thomas."
1187
1188 "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
1189 well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
1190 you?"
1191
1192 "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
1193 sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
1194
1195 "Thomas Sawyer--sir."
1196
1197 "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
1198 Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
1199 never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
1200 knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
1201 makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
1202 yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
1203 owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
1204 owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
1205 the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
1206 gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
1207 it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
1208 what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
1209 two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
1210 telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
1211 you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
1212 doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
1213 the names of the first two that were appointed?"
1214
1215 Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
1216 now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
1217 himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
1218 question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
1219 and say:
1220
1221 "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
1222
1223 Tom still hung fire.
1224
1225 "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
1226 two disciples were--"
1227
1228 "DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
1229
1230 Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
1231
1232
1233
1234 CHAPTER V
1235
1236 ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
1237 ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
1238 The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
1239 occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
1240 Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
1241 next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
1242 window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
1243 filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
1244 days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
1245 unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
1246 smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
1247 hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
1248 much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
1249 could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
1250 Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
1251 village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
1252 heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
1253 had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
1254 oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
1255 and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
1256 care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
1257 mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
1258 hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
1259 so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
1260 usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
1261 upon boys who had as snobs.
1262
1263 The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
1264 to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
1265 church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
1266 choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
1267 through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
1268 but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
1269 and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
1270 some foreign country.
1271
1272 The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
1273 a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
1274 His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
1275 a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
1276 word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
1277
1278 Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
1279
1280 Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
1281
1282 He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
1283 always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
1284 would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
1285 and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
1286 cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
1287 earth."
1288
1289 After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
1290 a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
1291 things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
1292 doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
1293 away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
1294 to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
1295
1296 And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
1297 into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
1298 church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
1299 for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
1300 States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
1301 President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
1302 by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
1303 European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
1304 and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
1305 withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
1306 a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
1307 and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
1308 grateful harvest of good. Amen.
1309
1310 There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
1311 down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
1312 he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
1313 through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
1314 --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
1315 clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
1316 matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
1317 resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
1318 midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
1319 him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
1320 embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
1321 it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
1322 of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
1323 and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
1324 through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
1325 safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
1326 it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
1327 if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
1328 closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
1329 instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
1330 detected the act and made him let it go.
1331
1332 The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
1333 an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
1334 --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
1335 and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
1336 hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
1337 church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
1338 anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
1339 interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
1340 picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
1341 millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
1342 little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
1343 the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
1344 conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
1345 nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
1346 wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
1347
1348 Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
1349 Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
1350 a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
1351 It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
1352 take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
1353 floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
1354 went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
1355 legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
1356 safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
1357 relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
1358 dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
1359 the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
1360 the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
1361 around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
1362 grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
1363 gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
1364 began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
1365 between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
1366 and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
1367 little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
1368 was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
1369 couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
1370 spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
1371 fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
1372 foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
1373 too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
1374 wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
1375 lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
1376 closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
1377 ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
1378 to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
1379 around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
1380 yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
1381 there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
1382 aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
1383 front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
1384 doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
1385 progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
1386 with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
1387 sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
1388 out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
1389 died in the distance.
1390
1391 By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
1392 suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
1393 discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
1394 possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
1395 sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
1396 unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
1397 parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
1398 the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
1399 pronounced.
1400
1401 Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
1402 was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
1403 variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
1404 dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
1405 in him to carry it off.
1406
1407
1408
1409 CHAPTER VI
1410
1411 MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
1412 him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
1413 generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
1414 holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
1415 more odious.
1416
1417 Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
1418 sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
1419 possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
1420 investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
1421 symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
1422 they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
1423 further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
1424 was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
1425 "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
1426 into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
1427 would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
1428 present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
1429 then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
1430 laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
1431 lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
1432 sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
1433 necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
1434 so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
1435
1436 But Sid slept on unconscious.
1437
1438 Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
1439
1440 No result from Sid.
1441
1442 Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
1443 then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
1444
1445 Sid snored on.
1446
1447 Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
1448 worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
1449 brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
1450 Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
1451
1452 "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
1453 Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
1454
1455 Tom moaned out:
1456
1457 "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
1458
1459 "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
1460
1461 "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
1462
1463 "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
1464 way?"
1465
1466 "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
1467
1468 "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
1469 flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
1470
1471 "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
1472 to me. When I'm gone--"
1473
1474 "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
1475
1476 "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
1477 give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
1478 come to town, and tell her--"
1479
1480 But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
1481 reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
1482 groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
1483
1484 Sid flew down-stairs and said:
1485
1486 "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
1487
1488 "Dying!"
1489
1490 "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
1491
1492 "Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
1493
1494 But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
1495 And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
1496 the bedside she gasped out:
1497
1498 "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
1499
1500 "Oh, auntie, I'm--"
1501
1502 "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
1503
1504 "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
1505
1506 The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
1507 little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
1508
1509 "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
1510 climb out of this."
1511
1512 The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
1513 little foolish, and he said:
1514
1515 "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
1516 tooth at all."
1517
1518 "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
1519
1520 "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
1521
1522 "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
1523 Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
1524 Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
1525
1526 Tom said:
1527
1528 "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
1529 I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
1530 home from school."
1531
1532 "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
1533 you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
1534 you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
1535 with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
1536 ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
1537 with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
1538 chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
1539 tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
1540
1541 But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
1542 after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
1543 his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
1544 admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
1545 exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
1546 fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
1547 without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
1548 he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
1549 spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
1550 wandered away a dismantled hero.
1551
1552 Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
1553 Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
1554 dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
1555 and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
1556 delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
1557 him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
1558 Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
1559 not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
1560 Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
1561 men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
1562 was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
1563 when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
1564 far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
1565 of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
1566 dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
1567
1568 Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
1569 in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
1570 school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
1571 go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
1572 suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
1573 pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
1574 and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
1575 put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
1576 that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
1577 harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
1578
1579 Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
1580
1581 "Hello, Huckleberry!"
1582
1583 "Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
1584
1585 "What's that you got?"
1586
1587 "Dead cat."
1588
1589 "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
1590
1591 "Bought him off'n a boy."
1592
1593 "What did you give?"
1594
1595 "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
1596
1597 "Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
1598
1599 "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
1600
1601 "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
1602
1603 "Good for? Cure warts with."
1604
1605 "No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
1606
1607 "I bet you don't. What is it?"
1608
1609 "Why, spunk-water."
1610
1611 "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
1612
1613 "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
1614
1615 "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
1616
1617 "Who told you so!"
1618
1619 "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
1620 told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
1621 the nigger told me. There now!"
1622
1623 "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
1624 don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
1625 you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
1626
1627 "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
1628 rain-water was."
1629
1630 "In the daytime?"
1631
1632 "Certainly."
1633
1634 "With his face to the stump?"
1635
1636 "Yes. Least I reckon so."
1637
1638 "Did he say anything?"
1639
1640 "I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
1641
1642 "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
1643 fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
1644 all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
1645 spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
1646 stump and jam your hand in and say:
1647
1648 'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
1649 Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
1650
1651 and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
1652 turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
1653 Because if you speak the charm's busted."
1654
1655 "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
1656 done."
1657
1658 "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
1659 town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
1660 spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
1661 Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
1662 warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
1663
1664 "Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
1665
1666 "Have you? What's your way?"
1667
1668 "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
1669 blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
1670 dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
1671 the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
1672 that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
1673 fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
1674 wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
1675
1676 "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
1677 say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
1678 That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
1679 most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
1680
1681 "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
1682 midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
1683 midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
1684 'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
1685 and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
1686 and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
1687 done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
1688
1689 "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
1690
1691 "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
1692
1693 "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
1694
1695 "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
1696 self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
1697 took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
1698 very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
1699 his arm."
1700
1701 "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
1702
1703 "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
1704 right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
1705 when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
1706
1707 "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
1708
1709 "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
1710
1711 "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
1712
1713 "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
1714 THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
1715 reckon."
1716
1717 "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
1718
1719 "Of course--if you ain't afeard."
1720
1721 "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
1722
1723 "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
1724 a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
1725 'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
1726 you tell."
1727
1728 "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
1729 but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
1730
1731 "Nothing but a tick."
1732
1733 "Where'd you get him?"
1734
1735 "Out in the woods."
1736
1737 "What'll you take for him?"
1738
1739 "I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
1740
1741 "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
1742
1743 "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
1744 satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
1745
1746 "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
1747 wanted to."
1748
1749 "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
1750 pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
1751
1752 "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
1753
1754 "Less see it."
1755
1756 Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
1757 viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
1758
1759 "Is it genuwyne?"
1760
1761 Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
1762
1763 "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
1764
1765 Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
1766 the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
1767 than before.
1768
1769 When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
1770 briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
1771 He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
1772 business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
1773 splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
1774 The interruption roused him.
1775
1776 "Thomas Sawyer!"
1777
1778 Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
1779
1780 "Sir!"
1781
1782 "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
1783
1784 Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
1785 yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
1786 sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
1787 girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
1788
1789 "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
1790
1791 The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
1792 study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
1793 mind. The master said:
1794
1795 "You--you did what?"
1796
1797 "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
1798
1799 There was no mistaking the words.
1800
1801 "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
1802 listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
1803 jacket."
1804
1805 The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
1806 switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
1807
1808 "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
1809
1810 The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
1811 in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
1812 his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
1813 fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
1814 hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
1815 and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
1816 the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
1817
1818 By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
1819 rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
1820 furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
1821 gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
1822 cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
1823 away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
1824 animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
1825 remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
1826 girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
1827 something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
1828 the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
1829 manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
1830 apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
1831 see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
1832 gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
1833
1834 "Let me see it."
1835
1836 Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
1837 ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
1838 girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
1839 everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
1840 whispered:
1841
1842 "It's nice--make a man."
1843
1844 The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
1845 He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
1846 hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
1847
1848 "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
1849
1850 Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
1851 armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
1852
1853 "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
1854
1855 "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
1856
1857 "Oh, will you? When?"
1858
1859 "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
1860
1861 "I'll stay if you will."
1862
1863 "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
1864
1865 "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
1866
1867 "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
1868 Tom, will you?"
1869
1870 "Yes."
1871
1872 Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
1873 the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
1874 said:
1875
1876 "Oh, it ain't anything."
1877
1878 "Yes it is."
1879
1880 "No it ain't. You don't want to see."
1881
1882 "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
1883
1884 "You'll tell."
1885
1886 "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
1887
1888 "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
1889
1890 "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
1891
1892 "Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
1893
1894 "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
1895 upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
1896 earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
1897 revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
1898
1899 "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
1900 and looked pleased, nevertheless.
1901
1902 Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
1903 ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
1904 house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
1905 from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
1906 awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
1907 word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
1908
1909 As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
1910 turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
1911 reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
1912 turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
1913 continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
1914 got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
1915 up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
1916 ostentation for months.
1917
1918
1919
1920 CHAPTER VII
1921
1922 THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
1923 ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
1924 seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
1925 utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
1926 sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
1927 scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
1928 Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
1929 sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
1930 distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
1931 living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
1932 heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
1933 pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
1934 lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
1935 it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
1936 tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
1937 with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
1938 was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
1939 him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
1940
1941 Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
1942 now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
1943 instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
1944 friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
1945 pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
1946 The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
1947 interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
1948 the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
1949 middle of it from top to bottom.
1950
1951 "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
1952 I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
1953 you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
1954
1955 "All right, go ahead; start him up."
1956
1957 The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
1958 harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
1959 change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
1960 absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
1961 the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
1962 all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
1963 tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
1964 anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
1965 have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
1966 twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
1967 possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
1968 too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
1969 angry in a moment. Said he:
1970
1971 "Tom, you let him alone."
1972
1973 "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
1974
1975 "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
1976
1977 "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
1978
1979 "Let him alone, I tell you."
1980
1981 "I won't!"
1982
1983 "You shall--he's on my side of the line."
1984
1985 "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
1986
1987 "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
1988 sha'n't touch him."
1989
1990 "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
1991 blame please with him, or die!"
1992
1993 A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
1994 Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
1995 the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
1996 absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
1997 before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
1998 them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
1999 contributed his bit of variety to it.
2000
2001 When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
2002 whispered in her ear:
2003
2004 "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
2005 the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
2006 lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
2007 way."
2008
2009 So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
2010 another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
2011 when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
2012 sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
2013 and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
2014 house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
2015 Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
2016
2017 "Do you love rats?"
2018
2019 "No! I hate them!"
2020
2021 "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
2022 head with a string."
2023
2024 "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
2025
2026 "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
2027
2028 "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
2029 it back to me."
2030
2031 That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
2032 legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
2033
2034 "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
2035
2036 "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
2037
2038 "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
2039 shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
2040 I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
2041
2042 "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
2043
2044 "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
2045 Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
2046
2047 "What's that?"
2048
2049 "Why, engaged to be married."
2050
2051 "No."
2052
2053 "Would you like to?"
2054
2055 "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
2056
2057 "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
2058 ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
2059 all. Anybody can do it."
2060
2061 "Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
2062
2063 "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
2064
2065 "Everybody?"
2066
2067 "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
2068 what I wrote on the slate?"
2069
2070 "Ye--yes."
2071
2072 "What was it?"
2073
2074 "I sha'n't tell you."
2075
2076 "Shall I tell YOU?"
2077
2078 "Ye--yes--but some other time."
2079
2080 "No, now."
2081
2082 "No, not now--to-morrow."
2083
2084 "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
2085 easy."
2086
2087 Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
2088 about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
2089 close to her ear. And then he added:
2090
2091 "Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
2092
2093 She resisted, for a while, and then said:
2094
2095 "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
2096 mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
2097
2098 "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
2099
2100 He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
2101 stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
2102
2103 Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
2104 with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
2105 little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
2106 pleaded:
2107
2108 "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
2109 of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
2110 apron and the hands.
2111
2112 By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
2113 with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
2114 said:
2115
2116 "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
2117 ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
2118 me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
2119
2120 "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
2121 anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
2122
2123 "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
2124 or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
2125 anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
2126 that's the way you do when you're engaged."
2127
2128 "It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
2129
2130 "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
2131
2132 The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
2133
2134 "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
2135
2136 The child began to cry. Tom said:
2137
2138 "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
2139
2140 "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
2141
2142 Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
2143 turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
2144 soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
2145 up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
2146 uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
2147 she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
2148 to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
2149 with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
2150 entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
2151 her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
2152 moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
2153
2154 "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
2155
2156 No reply--but sobs.
2157
2158 "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
2159
2160 More sobs.
2161
2162 Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
2163 andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
2164
2165 "Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
2166
2167 She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
2168 the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
2169 Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
2170 flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
2171
2172 "Tom! Come back, Tom!"
2173
2174 She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
2175 but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
2176 herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
2177 had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
2178 of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
2179 about her to exchange sorrows with.
2180
2181
2182
2183 CHAPTER VIII
2184
2185 TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
2186 the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
2187 crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
2188 juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
2189 later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
2190 Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
2191 in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
2192 way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
2193 oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
2194 even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
2195 broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
2196 woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
2197 of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
2198 melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
2199 sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
2200 meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
2201 he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
2202 very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
2203 ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
2204 grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
2205 about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
2206 could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
2207 What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
2208 treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
2209 when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
2210
2211 But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
2212 constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
2213 insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
2214 his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
2215 so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
2216 back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
2217 recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
2218 jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
2219 upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
2220 romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
2221 war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
2222 and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
2223 trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
2224 back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
2225 prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
2226 bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
2227 with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
2228 this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
2229 before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
2230 fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
2231 plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
2232 Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
2233 the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
2234 and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
2235 doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
2236 bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
2237 slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
2238 and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
2239 "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
2240
2241 Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
2242 home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
2243 he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
2244 together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
2245 one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
2246 hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
2247
2248 "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
2249
2250 Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
2251 up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
2252 were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
2253 He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
2254
2255 "Well, that beats anything!"
2256
2257 Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
2258 truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
2259 all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
2260 marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
2261 fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
2262 used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
2263 gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
2264 had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
2265 failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
2266 He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
2267 failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
2268 times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
2269 afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
2270 that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
2271 would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
2272 found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
2273 He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
2274 called--
2275
2276 "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
2277 doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
2278
2279 The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
2280 second and then darted under again in a fright.
2281
2282 "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
2283
2284 He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
2285 gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
2286 the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
2287 patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
2288 his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
2289 standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
2290 from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
2291
2292 "Brother, go find your brother!"
2293
2294 He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
2295 have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
2296 repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
2297 other.
2298
2299 Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
2300 aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
2301 suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
2302 disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
2303 a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
2304 fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
2305 answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
2306 and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
2307
2308 "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
2309
2310 Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
2311 Tom called:
2312
2313 "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
2314
2315 "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
2316
2317 "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
2318 "by the book," from memory.
2319
2320 "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
2321
2322 "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
2323
2324 "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
2325 with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
2326
2327 They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
2328 struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
2329 combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
2330
2331 "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
2332
2333 So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
2334 by Tom shouted:
2335
2336 "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
2337
2338 "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
2339 it."
2340
2341 "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
2342 the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
2343 Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
2344 back."
2345
2346 There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
2347 the whack and fell.
2348
2349 "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
2350
2351 "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
2352
2353 "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
2354
2355 "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
2356 lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
2357 you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
2358
2359 This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
2360 Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
2361 bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
2362 representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
2363 gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
2364 falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
2365 shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
2366 nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
2367
2368 The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
2369 grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
2370 civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
2371 They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
2372 President of the United States forever.
2373
2374
2375
2376 CHAPTER IX
2377
2378 AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
2379 They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
2380 waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
2381 nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
2382 would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
2383 afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
2384 Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
2385 scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
2386 of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
2387 crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
2388 abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
2389 now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
2390 locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
2391 the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
2392 numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
2393 answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
2394 agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
2395 begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
2396 but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
2397 half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
2398 neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
2399 crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
2400 brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
2401 out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
2402 fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
2403 to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
2404 was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
2405 gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
2406 grass of the graveyard.
2407
2408 It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
2409 hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
2410 fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
2411 the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
2412 whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
2413 tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
2414 the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
2415 of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
2416 have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
2417
2418 A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
2419 spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
2420 little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
2421 pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
2422 sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
2423 protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
2424 of the grave.
2425
2426 Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
2427 of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
2428 Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
2429 in a whisper:
2430
2431 "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
2432
2433 Huckleberry whispered:
2434
2435 "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
2436
2437 "I bet it is."
2438
2439 There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
2440 inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
2441
2442 "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
2443
2444 "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
2445
2446 Tom, after a pause:
2447
2448 "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
2449 Everybody calls him Hoss."
2450
2451 "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
2452 people, Tom."
2453
2454 This was a damper, and conversation died again.
2455
2456 Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
2457
2458 "Sh!"
2459
2460 "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
2461
2462 "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
2463
2464 "I--"
2465
2466 "There! Now you hear it."
2467
2468 "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
2469
2470 "I dono. Think they'll see us?"
2471
2472 "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
2473 come."
2474
2475 "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
2476 doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
2477 at all."
2478
2479 "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
2480
2481 "Listen!"
2482
2483 The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
2484 sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
2485
2486 "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
2487
2488 "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
2489
2490 Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
2491 old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
2492 little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
2493 shudder:
2494
2495 "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
2496 Can you pray?"
2497
2498 "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
2499 I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
2500
2501 "Sh!"
2502
2503 "What is it, Huck?"
2504
2505 "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
2506 voice."
2507
2508 "No--'tain't so, is it?"
2509
2510 "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
2511 notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
2512
2513 "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
2514 they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
2515 They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
2516 voices; it's Injun Joe."
2517
2518 "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
2519 dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
2520
2521 The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
2522 grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
2523
2524 "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
2525 lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
2526
2527 Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
2528 couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
2529 the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
2530 and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
2531 close the boys could have touched him.
2532
2533 "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
2534 moment."
2535
2536 They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
2537 no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
2538 of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
2539 upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
2540 two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
2541 with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
2542 ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
2543 face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
2544 with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
2545 large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
2546 said:
2547
2548 "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
2549 another five, or here she stays."
2550
2551 "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
2552
2553 "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
2554 pay in advance, and I've paid you."
2555
2556 "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
2557 doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
2558 your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
2559 eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
2560 even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
2561 a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
2562 nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
2563
2564 He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
2565 time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
2566 ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
2567
2568 "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
2569 grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
2570 main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
2571 Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
2572 up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
2573 round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
2574 doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
2575 grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
2576 the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
2577 young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
2578 with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
2579 dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
2580 the dark.
2581
2582 Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
2583 the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
2584 gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
2585
2586 "THAT score is settled--damn you."
2587
2588 Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
2589 Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
2590 --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
2591 hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
2592 fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
2593 gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
2594
2595 "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
2596
2597 "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
2598
2599 "What did you do it for?"
2600
2601 "I! I never done it!"
2602
2603 "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
2604
2605 Potter trembled and grew white.
2606
2607 "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
2608 in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
2609 can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
2610 feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
2611 never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
2612 so young and promising."
2613
2614 "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
2615 and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
2616 like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
2617 you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
2618 now."
2619
2620 "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
2621 I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
2622 reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
2623 never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
2624 won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
2625 stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
2626 Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
2627 murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
2628
2629 "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
2630 won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
2631
2632 "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
2633 live." And Potter began to cry.
2634
2635 "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
2636 You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
2637 tracks behind you."
2638
2639 Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
2640 half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
2641
2642 "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
2643 had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
2644 far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
2645 --chicken-heart!"
2646
2647 Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
2648 lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
2649 moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
2650
2651
2652
2653 CHAPTER X
2654
2655 THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
2656 horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
2657 apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
2658 that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
2659 catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
2660 near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
2661 wings to their feet.
2662
2663 "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
2664 whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
2665 longer."
2666
2667 Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
2668 their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
2669 They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
2670 through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
2671 shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
2672
2673 "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
2674
2675 "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
2676
2677 "Do you though?"
2678
2679 "Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
2680
2681 Tom thought a while, then he said:
2682
2683 "Who'll tell? We?"
2684
2685 "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
2686 DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
2687 we're a laying here."
2688
2689 "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
2690
2691 "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
2692 generally drunk enough."
2693
2694 Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
2695
2696 "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
2697
2698 "What's the reason he don't know it?"
2699
2700 "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
2701 he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
2702
2703 "By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
2704
2705 "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
2706
2707 "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
2708 besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
2709 him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
2710 his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
2711 man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
2712
2713 After another reflective silence, Tom said:
2714
2715 "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
2716
2717 "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
2718 make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
2719 squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
2720 take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
2721 mum."
2722
2723 "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
2724 that we--"
2725
2726 "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
2727 rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
2728 anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
2729 'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
2730
2731 Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
2732 awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
2733 with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
2734 took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
2735 his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
2736 down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
2737 the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
2738
2739 "Huck Finn and
2740 Tom Sawyer swears
2741 they will keep mum
2742 about This and They
2743 wish They may Drop
2744 down dead in Their
2745 Tracks if They ever
2746 Tell and Rot."
2747
2748 Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
2749 and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
2750 and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
2751
2752 "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
2753 it."
2754
2755 "What's verdigrease?"
2756
2757 "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
2758 --you'll see."
2759
2760 So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
2761 pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
2762 time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
2763 ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
2764 make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
2765 close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
2766 the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
2767 the key thrown away.
2768
2769 A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
2770 ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
2771
2772 "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
2773 --ALWAYS?"
2774
2775 "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
2776 to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
2777
2778 "Yes, I reckon that's so."
2779
2780 They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
2781 a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
2782 clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
2783
2784 "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
2785
2786 "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
2787
2788 "No, YOU, Tom!"
2789
2790 "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
2791
2792 "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
2793
2794 "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
2795 Harbison." *
2796
2797 [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
2798 him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
2799 Harbison."]
2800
2801 "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
2802 bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
2803
2804 The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
2805
2806 "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
2807
2808 Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
2809 whisper was hardly audible when he said:
2810
2811 "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
2812
2813 "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
2814
2815 "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
2816
2817 "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
2818 where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
2819
2820 "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
2821 feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
2822 --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
2823 I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
2824
2825 "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
2826 Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
2827 lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
2828
2829 Tom choked off and whispered:
2830
2831 "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
2832
2833 Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
2834
2835 "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
2836
2837 "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
2838 you know. NOW who can he mean?"
2839
2840 The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
2841
2842 "Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
2843
2844 "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
2845
2846 "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
2847
2848 "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
2849 sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
2850 just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
2851 coming back to this town any more."
2852
2853 The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
2854
2855 "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
2856
2857 "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
2858
2859 Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
2860 boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
2861 their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
2862 down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
2863 of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
2864 The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
2865 It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
2866 too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
2867 out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
2868 distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
2869 the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
2870 within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
2871 his nose pointing heavenward.
2872
2873 "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
2874
2875 "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
2876 house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
2877 come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
2878 there ain't anybody dead there yet."
2879
2880 "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
2881 in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
2882
2883 "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
2884
2885 "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
2886 Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
2887 these kind of things, Huck."
2888
2889 Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
2890 window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
2891 and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
2892 escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
2893 had been so for an hour.
2894
2895 When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
2896 light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
2897 been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
2898 him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
2899 feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
2900 finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
2901 averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
2902 chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
2903 was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
2904 silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
2905
2906 After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
2907 the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
2908 wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
2909 and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
2910 hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
2911 more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
2912 sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
2913 to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
2914 that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
2915 feeble confidence.
2916
2917 He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
2918 and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
2919 unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
2920 along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
2921 of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
2922 trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
2923 desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
2924 stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
2925 His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
2926 he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
2927 a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
2928 sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
2929
2930 This final feather broke the camel's back.
2931
2932
2933
2934 CHAPTER XI
2935
2936 CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
2937 with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
2938 the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
2939 house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
2940 schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
2941 thought strangely of him if he had not.
2942
2943 A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
2944 recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
2945 And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
2946 himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
2947 that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
2948 especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
2949 said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
2950 are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
2951 verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
2952 all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
2953 he would be captured before night.
2954
2955 All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
2956 vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
2957 thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
2958 unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
2959 he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
2960 spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
2961 pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
2962 looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
2963 in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
2964 grisly spectacle before them.
2965
2966 "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
2967 grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
2968 was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
2969 hand is here."
2970
2971 Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
2972 face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
2973 and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
2974
2975 "Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
2976
2977 "Muff Potter!"
2978
2979 "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
2980
2981 People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
2982 trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
2983
2984 "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
2985 quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
2986
2987 The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
2988 ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
2989 haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
2990 before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
2991 in his hands and burst into tears.
2992
2993 "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
2994 done it."
2995
2996 "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
2997
2998 This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
2999 around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
3000 and exclaimed:
3001
3002 "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
3003
3004 "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
3005
3006 Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
3007 the ground. Then he said:
3008
3009 "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
3010 then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
3011 'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
3012
3013 Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
3014 stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
3015 moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
3016 and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
3017 finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
3018 break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
3019 vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
3020 it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
3021
3022 "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
3023 said.
3024
3025 "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
3026 run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
3027 to sobbing again.
3028
3029 Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
3030 afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
3031 lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
3032 had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
3033 balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
3034 not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
3035
3036 They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
3037 offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
3038
3039 Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
3040 wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
3041 that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
3042 circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
3043 disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
3044
3045 "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
3046
3047 Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
3048 much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
3049
3050 "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
3051 awake half the time."
3052
3053 Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
3054
3055 "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
3056 mind, Tom?"
3057
3058 "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
3059 spilled his coffee.
3060
3061 "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
3062 blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
3063 you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
3064 you'll tell?"
3065
3066 Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
3067 have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
3068 face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
3069
3070 "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
3071 myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
3072
3073 Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
3074 satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
3075 and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
3076 jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
3077 frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
3078 listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
3079 back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
3080 the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
3081 make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
3082
3083 It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
3084 inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
3085 mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
3086 though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
3087 he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
3088 strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
3089 marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
3090 could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
3091 of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
3092
3093 Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
3094 opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
3095 small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
3096 jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
3097 of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
3098 seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
3099 conscience.
3100
3101 The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
3102 ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
3103 character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
3104 in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
3105 his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
3106 grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
3107 to try the case in the courts at present.
3108
3109
3110
3111 CHAPTER XII
3112
3113 ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
3114 troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
3115 itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
3116 struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
3117 wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
3118 house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
3119 should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
3120 interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
3121 was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
3122 there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
3123 try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
3124 infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
3125 producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
3126 these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
3127 fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
3128 but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
3129 "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
3130 they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
3131 contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
3132 and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
3133 what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
3134 wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
3135 health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
3136 had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
3137 as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
3138 together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
3139 with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
3140 "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
3141 angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
3142 neighbors.
3143
3144 The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
3145 windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
3146 up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
3147 she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
3148 then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
3149 till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
3150 through his pores"--as Tom said.
3151
3152 Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
3153 and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
3154 and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
3155 assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
3156 calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
3157 day with quack cure-alls.
3158
3159 Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
3160 filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
3161 be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
3162 time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
3163 gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
3164 treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
3165 gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
3166 result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
3167 for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
3168 wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
3169
3170 Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
3171 romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
3172 too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
3173 thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
3174 professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
3175 became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
3176 and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
3177 misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
3178 bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
3179 but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
3180 crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
3181
3182 One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
3183 cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
3184 for a taste. Tom said:
3185
3186 "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
3187
3188 But Peter signified that he did want it.
3189
3190 "You better make sure."
3191
3192 Peter was sure.
3193
3194 "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
3195 anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
3196 blame anybody but your own self."
3197
3198 Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
3199 Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
3200 delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
3201 against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
3202 Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
3203 enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
3204 his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
3205 spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
3206 to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
3207 hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
3208 flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
3209 peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
3210
3211 "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
3212
3213 "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
3214
3215 "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
3216
3217 "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
3218 a good time."
3219
3220 "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
3221 apprehensive.
3222
3223 "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
3224
3225 "You DO?"
3226
3227 "Yes'm."
3228
3229 The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
3230 by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
3231 teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
3232 up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
3233 usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
3234
3235 "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
3236
3237 "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
3238
3239 "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
3240
3241 "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
3242 roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
3243 human!"
3244
3245 Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
3246 in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
3247 too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
3248 and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
3249
3250 "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
3251
3252 Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
3253 through his gravity.
3254
3255 "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
3256 It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
3257
3258 "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
3259 try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
3260 any more medicine."
3261
3262 Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
3263 thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
3264 he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
3265 comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
3266 be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
3267 Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
3268 a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
3269 accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
3270 Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
3271 watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
3272 owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
3273 ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
3274 the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
3275 passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
3276 instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
3277 chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
3278 handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
3279 conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
3280 Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
3281 all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
3282 he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
3283 war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
3284 schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
3285 direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
3286 upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
3287 her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
3288 off!"
3289
3290 Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
3291 and crestfallen.
3292
3293
3294
3295 CHAPTER XIII
3296
3297 TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
3298 forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
3299 out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
3300 tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
3301 nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
3302 blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
3303 friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
3304 would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
3305
3306 By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
3307 "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
3308 should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
3309 hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
3310 world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
3311 and fast.
3312
3313 Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
3314 --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
3315 Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
3316 his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
3317 resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
3318 roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
3319 hoping that Joe would not forget him.
3320
3321 But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
3322 going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
3323 mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
3324 tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
3325 and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
3326 to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
3327 driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
3328
3329 As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
3330 stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
3331 relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
3332 Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
3333 dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
3334 Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
3335 life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
3336
3337 Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
3338 River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
3339 island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
3340 a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
3341 shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
3342 Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
3343 matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
3344 Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
3345 was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
3346 the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
3347 was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
3348 capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
3349 could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
3350 before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
3351 glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
3352 something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
3353 wait."
3354
3355 About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
3356 and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
3357 meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
3358 like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
3359 quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
3360 the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
3361 same way. Then a guarded voice said:
3362
3363 "Who goes there?"
3364
3365 "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
3366
3367 "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
3368 had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
3369
3370 "'Tis well. Give the countersign."
3371
3372 Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
3373 the brooding night:
3374
3375 "BLOOD!"
3376
3377 Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
3378 tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
3379 an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
3380 lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
3381
3382 The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
3383 himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
3384 skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
3385 a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
3386 "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
3387 would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
3388 matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
3389 smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
3390 stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
3391 imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
3392 suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
3393 dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
3394 stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
3395 tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
3396 village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
3397 excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
3398
3399 They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
3400 Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
3401 arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
3402
3403 "Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
3404
3405 "Aye-aye, sir!"
3406
3407 "Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
3408
3409 "Steady it is, sir!"
3410
3411 "Let her go off a point!"
3412
3413 "Point it is, sir!"
3414
3415 As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
3416 it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
3417 "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
3418
3419 "What sail's she carrying?"
3420
3421 "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
3422
3423 "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
3424 --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
3425
3426 "Aye-aye, sir!"
3427
3428 "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
3429
3430 "Aye-aye, sir!"
3431
3432 "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
3433 port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
3434
3435 "Steady it is, sir!"
3436
3437 The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
3438 head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
3439 there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
3440 said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
3441 passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
3442 where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
3443 star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
3444 The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
3445 the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
3446 "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
3447 with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
3448 It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
3449 beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
3450 broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
3451 too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
3452 current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
3453 the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
3454 the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
3455 head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
3456 their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
3457 sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
3458 shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
3459 air in good weather, as became outlaws.
3460
3461 They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
3462 steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
3463 bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
3464 stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
3465 wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
3466 island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
3467 return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
3468 its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
3469 and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
3470
3471 When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
3472 corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
3473 filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
3474 would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
3475 camp-fire.
3476
3477 "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
3478
3479 "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
3480
3481 "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
3482
3483 "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
3484 nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
3485 here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
3486
3487 "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
3488 mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
3489 blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
3490 when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
3491 then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
3492
3493 "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
3494 you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
3495
3496 "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
3497 they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
3498 hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
3499 sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
3500
3501 "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
3502
3503 "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
3504 that if you was a hermit."
3505
3506 "Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
3507
3508 "Well, what would you do?"
3509
3510 "I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
3511
3512 "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
3513
3514 "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
3515
3516 "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
3517 a disgrace."
3518
3519 The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
3520 finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
3521 it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
3522 cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
3523 contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
3524 secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
3525
3526 "What does pirates have to do?"
3527
3528 Tom said:
3529
3530 "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
3531 the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
3532 ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
3533 'em walk a plank."
3534
3535 "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
3536 the women."
3537
3538 "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
3539 the women's always beautiful, too.
3540
3541 "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
3542 and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
3543
3544 "Who?" said Huck.
3545
3546 "Why, the pirates."
3547
3548 Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
3549
3550 "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
3551 regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
3552
3553 But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
3554 after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
3555 that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
3556 wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
3557
3558 Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
3559 eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
3560 Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
3561 weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
3562 had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
3563 inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
3564 to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
3565 say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
3566 that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
3567 heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
3568 of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
3569 conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
3570 wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
3571 the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
3572 conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
3573 times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
3574 plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
3575 getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
3576 "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
3577 simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
3578 they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
3579 their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
3580 Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
3581 pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
3582
3583
3584
3585 CHAPTER XIV
3586
3587 WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
3588 rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
3589 cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
3590 the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
3591 not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
3592 stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
3593 fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
3594 and Huck still slept.
3595
3596 Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
3597 the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
3598 the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
3599 manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
3600 work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
3601 crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
3602 from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
3603 was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
3604 accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
3605 by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
3606 go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
3607 curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
3608 began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
3609 he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
3610 doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
3611 from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
3612 manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
3613 and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
3614 climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
3615 it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
3616 your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
3617 --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
3618 credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
3619 simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
3620 its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
3621 its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
3622 time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
3623 and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
3624 enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
3625 stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
3626 side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
3627 and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
3628 intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
3629 probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
3630 be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
3631 lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
3632 and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
3633
3634 Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
3635 shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
3636 tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
3637 sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
3638 distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
3639 slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
3640 gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
3641 between them and civilization.
3642
3643 They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
3644 ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
3645 a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
3646 oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
3647 wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
3648 While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
3649 hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
3650 and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
3651 not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
3652 handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
3653 enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
3654 astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
3655 not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
3656 caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
3657 open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
3658 of hunger make, too.
3659
3660 They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
3661 and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
3662 tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
3663 among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
3664 ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
3665 upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
3666
3667 They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
3668 astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
3669 long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
3670 was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
3671 wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
3672 middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
3673 hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
3674 then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
3675 began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
3676 in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
3677 spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
3678 crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
3679 homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
3680 and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
3681 none was brave enough to speak his thought.
3682
3683 For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
3684 sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
3685 clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
3686 became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
3687 glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
3688 There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
3689 boom came floating down out of the distance.
3690
3691 "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
3692
3693 "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
3694
3695 "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
3696
3697 "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
3698
3699 They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
3700 troubled the solemn hush.
3701
3702 "Let's go and see."
3703
3704 They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
3705 They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
3706 little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
3707 with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
3708 a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
3709 neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
3710 the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
3711 from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
3712 that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
3713
3714 "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
3715
3716 "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
3717 got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
3718 come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
3719 quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
3720 that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
3721
3722 "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
3723 do that."
3724
3725 "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
3726 what they SAY over it before they start it out."
3727
3728 "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
3729 they don't."
3730
3731 "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
3732 Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
3733
3734 The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
3735 an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
3736 expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
3737 gravity.
3738
3739 "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
3740
3741 "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
3742
3743 The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
3744 flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
3745
3746 "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
3747
3748 They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
3749 were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
3750 tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
3751 lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
3752 indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
3753 town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
3754 was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
3755 all.
3756
3757 As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
3758 business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
3759 were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
3760 trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
3761 and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
3762 about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
3763 account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
3764 when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
3765 talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
3766 wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
3767 could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
3768 enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
3769 grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
3770 Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
3771 might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
3772
3773 Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
3774 in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
3775 out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
3776 clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
3777 rest for the moment.
3778
3779 As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
3780 followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
3781 watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
3782 and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
3783 by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
3784 semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
3785 two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
3786 wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
3787 and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
3788 removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
3789 hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
3790 a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
3791 kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
3792 way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
3793 and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
3794
3795
3796
3797 CHAPTER XV
3798
3799 A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
3800 toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
3801 half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
3802 struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
3803 quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
3804 had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
3805 till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
3806 jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
3807 the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
3808 ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
3809 saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
3810 Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
3811 watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
3812 strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
3813 stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
3814
3815 Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
3816 off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
3817 against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
3818 his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
3819 the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
3820 slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
3821 downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
3822
3823 He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
3824 aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
3825 at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
3826 Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
3827 talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
3828 door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
3829 pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
3830 cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
3831 squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
3832 warily.
3833
3834 "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
3835 "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
3836 strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
3837
3838 Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
3839 himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
3840 aunt's foot.
3841
3842 "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
3843 --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
3844 warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
3845 he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
3846
3847 "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
3848 every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
3849 could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
3850 that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
3851 because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
3852 never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
3853 would break.
3854
3855 "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
3856 better in some ways--"
3857
3858 "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
3859 see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
3860 care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
3861 know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
3862 comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
3863
3864 "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
3865 the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
3866 Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
3867 sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
3868 again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
3869
3870 "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
3871 exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
3872 and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
3873 would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
3874 with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
3875 troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
3876
3877 But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
3878 down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
3879 anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
3880 for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
3881 than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
3882 grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
3883 joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
3884 his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
3885
3886 He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
3887 conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
3888 then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
3889 missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
3890 soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
3891 the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
3892 below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
3893 against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
3894 --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
3895 driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
3896 search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
3897 drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
3898 swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
3899 night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
3900 given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
3901 shuddered.
3902
3903 Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
3904 mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
3905 other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
3906 was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
3907 snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
3908
3909 Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
3910 appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
3911 trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
3912 was through.
3913
3914 He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
3915 broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
3916 turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
3917 sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
3918 candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
3919 of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
3920 candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
3921 face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
3922 hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
3923 straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
3924
3925 He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
3926 there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
3927 tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
3928 slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
3929 into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
3930 mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
3931 stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
3932 this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
3933 skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
3934 legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
3935 made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
3936 entered the woods.
3937
3938 He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
3939 awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
3940 spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
3941 island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
3942 great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
3943 little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
3944 heard Joe say:
3945
3946 "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
3947 knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
3948 that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
3949
3950 "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
3951
3952 "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
3953 back here to breakfast."
3954
3955 "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
3956 grandly into camp.
3957
3958 A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
3959 the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
3960 adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
3961 tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
3962 noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
3963
3964
3965
3966 CHAPTER XVI
3967
3968 AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
3969 bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
3970 soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
3971 Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
3972 were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
3973 walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
3974 Friday morning.
3975
3976 After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
3977 chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
3978 they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
3979 water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
3980 legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
3981 And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
3982 other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
3983 averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
3984 struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
3985 went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
3986 sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
3987
3988 When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
3989 dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
3990 and by break for the water again and go through the original
3991 performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
3992 skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
3993 ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
3994 would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
3995
3996 Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
3997 "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
3998 swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
3999 his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
4000 ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
4001 protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
4002 had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
4003 rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
4004 to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
4005 drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
4006 his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
4007 weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
4008 erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
4009 the other boys together and joining them.
4010
4011 But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
4012 homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
4013 very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
4014 but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
4015 to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
4016 he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
4017 cheerfulness:
4018
4019 "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
4020 it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
4021 on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
4022
4023 But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
4024 Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
4025 discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
4026 very gloomy. Finally he said:
4027
4028 "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
4029
4030 "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
4031 the fishing that's here."
4032
4033 "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
4034
4035 "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
4036
4037 "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
4038 ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
4039
4040 "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
4041
4042 "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
4043 I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
4044
4045 "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
4046 Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
4047 it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
4048
4049 Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
4050
4051 "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
4052 "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
4053
4054 "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
4055 laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
4056 We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
4057 get along without him, per'aps."
4058
4059 But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
4060 sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
4061 Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
4062 ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
4063 off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
4064 Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
4065
4066 "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
4067 it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
4068
4069 "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
4070
4071 "Tom, I better go."
4072
4073 "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
4074
4075 Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
4076
4077 "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
4078 you when we get to shore."
4079
4080 "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
4081
4082 Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
4083 strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
4084 He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
4085 suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
4086 made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
4087 comrades, yelling:
4088
4089 "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
4090
4091 They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
4092 were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
4093 last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
4094 war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
4095 told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
4096 excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
4097 would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
4098 meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
4099
4100 The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
4101 chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
4102 genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
4103 learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
4104 try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
4105 smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
4106 the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
4107
4108 Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
4109 charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
4110 taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
4111
4112 "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
4113 long ago."
4114
4115 "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
4116
4117 "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
4118 wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
4119
4120 "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
4121 just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
4122
4123 "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
4124
4125 "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
4126 slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
4127 Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
4128 Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
4129
4130 "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
4131 alley. No, 'twas the day before."
4132
4133 "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
4134
4135 "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
4136 sick."
4137
4138 "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
4139 Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
4140
4141 "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
4142 try it once. HE'D see!"
4143
4144 "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
4145 tackle it once."
4146
4147 "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
4148 more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
4149
4150 "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
4151
4152 "So do I."
4153
4154 "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
4155 around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
4156 And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
4157 say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
4158 very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
4159 enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
4160 ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
4161
4162 "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
4163
4164 "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
4165 won't they wish they'd been along?"
4166
4167 "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
4168
4169 So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
4170 disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
4171 increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
4172 fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
4173 fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
4174 throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
4175 followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
4176 now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
4177 Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
4178 and main. Joe said feebly:
4179
4180 "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
4181
4182 Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
4183
4184 "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
4185 spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
4186
4187 So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
4188 and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
4189 very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
4190 had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
4191
4192 They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
4193 and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
4194 theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
4195 ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
4196
4197 About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
4198 oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
4199 huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
4200 the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
4201 stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
4202 continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
4203 the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
4204 vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
4205 another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
4206 sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
4207 breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
4208 of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
4209 night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
4210 distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
4211 startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
4212 down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
4213 sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
4214 flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
4215 forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
4216 right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
4217 gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
4218 leaves.
4219
4220 "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
4221
4222 They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
4223 two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
4224 trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
4225 another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
4226 drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
4227 along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
4228 wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
4229 However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
4230 the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
4231 in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
4232 old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
4233 allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
4234 sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
4235 The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
4236 bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
4237 Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
4238 lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
4239 clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
4240 river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
4241 outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
4242 drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
4243 some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
4244 growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
4245 explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
4246 culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
4247 to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
4248 deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
4249 wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
4250
4251 But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
4252 and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
4253 boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
4254 still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
4255 shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
4256 they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
4257
4258 Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
4259 but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
4260 against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
4261 and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
4262 discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
4263 been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
4264 the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
4265 they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
4266 under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
4267 they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
4268 were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
4269 feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
4270 their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
4271 sleep on, anywhere around.
4272
4273 As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
4274 and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
4275 scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
4276 the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
4277 more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
4278 he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
4279 or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
4280 of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
4281 was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
4282 change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
4283 they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
4284 so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
4285 tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
4286
4287 By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
4288 each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
4289 each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
4290 extremely satisfactory one.
4291
4292 They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
4293 difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
4294 hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
4295 impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
4296 process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
4297 they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
4298 such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
4299 and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
4300
4301 And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
4302 gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
4303 having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
4304 be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
4305 promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
4306 supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
4307 They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
4308 have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
4309 leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
4310 for them at present.
4311
4312
4313
4314 CHAPTER XVII
4315
4316 BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
4317 Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
4318 put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
4319 possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
4320 conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
4321 and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
4322 burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
4323 gradually gave them up.
4324
4325 In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
4326 deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
4327 nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
4328
4329 "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
4330 anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
4331
4332 Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
4333
4334 "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
4335 that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
4336 never, never, never see him any more."
4337
4338 This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
4339 down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
4340 Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
4341 talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
4342 saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
4343 awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
4344 pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
4345 then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
4346 now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
4347 this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
4348 know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
4349
4350 Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
4351 many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
4352 less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
4353 who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
4354 the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
4355 were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
4356 other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
4357 remembrance:
4358
4359 "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
4360
4361 But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
4362 and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
4363 away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
4364
4365 When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
4366 began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
4367 Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
4368 that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
4369 in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
4370 was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
4371 as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
4372 could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
4373 was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
4374 entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
4375 in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
4376 rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
4377 pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
4378 muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
4379 A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
4380 and the Life."
4381
4382 As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
4383 graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
4384 every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
4385 remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
4386 before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
4387 boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
4388 departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
4389 people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
4390 were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
4391 seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
4392 congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
4393 till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
4394 mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
4395 to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
4396
4397 There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
4398 later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
4399 above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
4400 another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
4401 impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
4402 marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
4403 drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
4404 the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
4405
4406 Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
4407 ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
4408 poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
4409 do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
4410 started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
4411
4412 "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
4413
4414 "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
4415 the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
4416 capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
4417
4418 Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
4419 from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
4420
4421 And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
4422 while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
4423 envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
4424 the proudest moment of his life.
4425
4426 As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
4427 willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
4428 once more.
4429
4430 Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
4431 varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
4432 which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
4433
4434
4435
4436 CHAPTER XVIII
4437
4438 THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
4439 brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
4440 the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
4441 miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
4442 town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
4443 alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
4444 chaos of invalided benches.
4445
4446 At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
4447 Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
4448 talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
4449
4450 "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
4451 suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
4452 you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
4453 over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
4454 me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
4455
4456 "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
4457 would if you had thought of it."
4458
4459 "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
4460 now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
4461
4462 "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
4463
4464 "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
4465 tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
4466 cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
4467
4468 "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
4469 giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
4470 anything."
4471
4472 "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
4473 DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
4474 wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
4475 little."
4476
4477 "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
4478
4479 "I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
4480
4481 "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
4482 dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
4483
4484 "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
4485 What did you dream?"
4486
4487 "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
4488 bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
4489
4490 "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
4491 even that much trouble about us."
4492
4493 "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
4494
4495 "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
4496
4497 "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
4498
4499 "Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
4500
4501 "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
4502
4503 "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
4504
4505 Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
4506 said:
4507
4508 "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
4509
4510 "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
4511
4512 "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
4513
4514 "Go ON, Tom!"
4515
4516 "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
4517 believed the door was open."
4518
4519 "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
4520
4521 "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
4522 you made Sid go and--and--"
4523
4524 "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
4525
4526 "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
4527
4528 "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
4529 days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
4530 Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
4531 get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
4532
4533 "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
4534 warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
4535 responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
4536
4537 "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
4538
4539 "And then you began to cry."
4540
4541 "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
4542
4543 "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
4544 and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
4545 throwed it out her own self--"
4546
4547 "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
4548 was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
4549
4550 "Then Sid he said--he said--"
4551
4552 "I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
4553
4554 "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
4555
4556 "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
4557
4558 "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
4559 to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
4560
4561 "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
4562
4563 "And you shut him up sharp."
4564
4565 "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
4566 there, somewheres!"
4567
4568 "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
4569 you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
4570
4571 "Just as true as I live!"
4572
4573 "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
4574 us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
4575 Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
4576
4577 "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
4578 these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
4579 seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
4580
4581 "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
4582 word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
4583 wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
4584 being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
4585 looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
4586 over and kissed you on the lips."
4587
4588 "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
4589 she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
4590 guiltiest of villains.
4591
4592 "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
4593 just audibly.
4594
4595 "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
4596 was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
4597 you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
4598 good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
4599 and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
4600 goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
4601 blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
4602 few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
4603 night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
4604 hendered me long enough."
4605
4606 The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
4607 and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
4608 judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
4609 house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
4610 mistakes in it!"
4611
4612 What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
4613 but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
4614 public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
4615 the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
4616 and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
4617 proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
4618 drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
4619 into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
4620 at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
4621 have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
4622 glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
4623 circus.
4624
4625 At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
4626 such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
4627 long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
4628 adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
4629 likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
4630 material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
4631 puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
4632
4633 Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
4634 was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
4635 maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
4636 that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
4637 arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
4638 of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
4639 tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
4640 pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
4641 when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
4642 captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
4643 in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
4644 vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
4645 him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
4646 he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
4647 irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
4648 wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
4649 particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
4650 pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
4651 her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
4652 said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
4653
4654 "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
4655
4656 "I did come--didn't you see me?"
4657
4658 "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
4659
4660 "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
4661
4662 "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
4663 the picnic."
4664
4665 "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
4666
4667 "My ma's going to let me have one."
4668
4669 "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
4670
4671 "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
4672 want, and I want you."
4673
4674 "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
4675
4676 "By and by. Maybe about vacation."
4677
4678 "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
4679
4680 "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
4681 ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
4682 about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
4683 great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
4684 three feet of it."
4685
4686 "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
4687
4688 "Yes."
4689
4690 "And me?" said Sally Rogers.
4691
4692 "Yes."
4693
4694 "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
4695
4696 "Yes."
4697
4698 And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
4699 for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
4700 talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
4701 came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
4702 chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
4703 everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
4704 had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
4705 pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
4706 in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
4707 SHE'D do.
4708
4709 At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
4710 self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
4711 her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
4712 falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
4713 the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
4714 absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
4715 that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
4716 Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
4717 throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
4718 called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
4719 wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
4720 for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
4721 did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
4722 could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
4723 otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
4724 again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
4725 not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
4726 Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
4727 living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
4728 fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
4729
4730 Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
4731 attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
4732 vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
4733 going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
4734 things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
4735 let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
4736
4737 "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
4738 town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
4739 aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
4740 this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
4741 you out! I'll just take and--"
4742
4743 And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
4744 --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
4745 holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
4746 imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
4747
4748 Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
4749 Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
4750 other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
4751 as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
4752 began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
4753 followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
4754 ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
4755 grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
4756 poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
4757 exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
4758 at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
4759 burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
4760
4761 Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
4762 said:
4763
4764 "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
4765
4766 So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
4767 she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
4768 crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
4769 humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
4770 had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
4771 He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
4772 He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
4773 risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
4774 opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
4775 poured ink upon the page.
4776
4777 Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
4778 and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
4779 intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
4780 troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
4781 had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
4782 was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
4783 shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
4784 spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
4785
4786
4787
4788 CHAPTER XIX
4789
4790 TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
4791 said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
4792 unpromising market:
4793
4794 "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
4795
4796 "Auntie, what have I done?"
4797
4798 "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
4799 old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
4800 about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
4801 you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
4802 don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
4803 me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
4804 such a fool of myself and never say a word."
4805
4806 This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
4807 seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
4808 mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
4809 to say for a moment. Then he said:
4810
4811 "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
4812
4813 "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
4814 selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
4815 Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
4816 think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
4817 to pity us and save us from sorrow."
4818
4819 "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
4820 didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
4821 that night."
4822
4823 "What did you come for, then?"
4824
4825 "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
4826 drownded."
4827
4828 "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
4829 believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
4830 did--and I know it, Tom."
4831
4832 "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
4833
4834 "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
4835 worse."
4836
4837 "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
4838 grieving--that was all that made me come."
4839
4840 "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
4841 of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
4842 ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
4843
4844 "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
4845 all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
4846 couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
4847 pocket and kept mum."
4848
4849 "What bark?"
4850
4851 "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
4852 you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
4853
4854 The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
4855 dawned in her eyes.
4856
4857 "DID you kiss me, Tom?"
4858
4859 "Why, yes, I did."
4860
4861 "Are you sure you did, Tom?"
4862
4863 "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
4864
4865 "What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
4866
4867 "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
4868
4869 The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
4870 her voice when she said:
4871
4872 "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
4873 bother me any more."
4874
4875 The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
4876 jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
4877 hand, and said to herself:
4878
4879 "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
4880 blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
4881 Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
4882 goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
4883 lie. I won't look."
4884
4885 She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
4886 out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
4887 more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
4888 thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
4889 So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
4890 piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
4891 boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
4892
4893
4894
4895 CHAPTER XX
4896
4897 THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
4898 that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
4899 again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
4900 Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
4901 manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
4902
4903 "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
4904 ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
4905 you?"
4906
4907 The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
4908
4909 "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
4910 never speak to you again."
4911
4912 She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
4913 even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
4914 right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
4915 fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
4916 a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
4917 encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
4918 hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
4919 Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
4920 "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
4921 spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
4922 Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
4923
4924 Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
4925 The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
4926 ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
4927 had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
4928 schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
4929 absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
4930 that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
4931 perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
4932 and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
4933 theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
4934 the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
4935 door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
4936 moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
4937 she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
4938 ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
4939 leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
4940 frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
4941 on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
4942 of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
4943 hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
4944 the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
4945 shame and vexation.
4946
4947 "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
4948 person and look at what they're looking at."
4949
4950 "How could I know you was looking at anything?"
4951
4952 "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
4953 going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
4954 whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
4955
4956 Then she stamped her little foot and said:
4957
4958 "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
4959 You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
4960 flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
4961
4962 Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
4963 to himself:
4964
4965 "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
4966 Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
4967 thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
4968 old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
4969 even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
4970 who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
4971 he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
4972 right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
4973 on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
4974 kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
4975 out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
4976 right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
4977 out!"
4978
4979 Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
4980 the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
4981 interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
4982 side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
4983 did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
4984 could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
4985 the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
4986 of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
4987 lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
4988 did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
4989 spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
4990 seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
4991 glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
4992 found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
4993 impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
4994 forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
4995 about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
4996 his life!"
4997
4998 Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
4999 broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
5000 upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
5001 had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
5002 to the denial from principle.
5003
5004 A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
5005 was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
5006 himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
5007 but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
5008 pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
5009 his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
5010 for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
5011 Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
5012 look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
5013 his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
5014 too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
5015 Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
5016 through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
5017 instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
5018 only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
5019 for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
5020 Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
5021 the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
5022 --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
5023
5024 There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
5025 continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
5026
5027 "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
5028
5029 A denial. Another pause.
5030
5031 "Joseph Harper, did you?"
5032
5033 Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
5034 slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
5035 boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
5036
5037 "Amy Lawrence?"
5038
5039 A shake of the head.
5040
5041 "Gracie Miller?"
5042
5043 The same sign.
5044
5045 "Susan Harper, did you do this?"
5046
5047 Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
5048 from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
5049 the situation.
5050
5051 "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
5052 --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
5053 --"did you tear this book?"
5054
5055 A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
5056 feet and shouted--"I done it!"
5057
5058 The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
5059 moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
5060 forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
5061 adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
5062 enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
5063 act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
5064 Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
5065 added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
5066 dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
5067 captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
5068
5069 Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
5070 for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
5071 her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
5072 soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
5073 latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
5074
5075 "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
5076
5077
5078
5079 CHAPTER XXI
5080
5081 VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
5082 severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
5083 good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
5084 idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
5085 young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
5086 lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
5087 his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
5088 age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
5089 day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
5090 seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
5091 shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
5092 days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
5093 threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
5094 ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
5095 success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
5096 the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
5097 plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
5098 boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
5099 for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
5100 had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
5101 on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
5102 interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
5103 occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
5104 said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
5105 Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
5106 chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
5107 away to school.
5108
5109 In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
5110 the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
5111 wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
5112 his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
5113 He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
5114 six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
5115 and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
5116 citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
5117 scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
5118 small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
5119 rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
5120 lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
5121 grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
5122 the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
5123 non-participating scholars.
5124
5125 The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
5126 recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
5127 stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
5128 spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
5129 machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
5130 cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
5131 manufactured bow and retired.
5132
5133 A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
5134 performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
5135 sat down flushed and happy.
5136
5137 Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
5138 the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
5139 speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
5140 middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
5141 him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
5142 house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
5143 its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
5144 struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
5145 attempt at applause, but it died early.
5146
5147 "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
5148 Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
5149 and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
5150 prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
5151 by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
5152 the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
5153 dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
5154 "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
5155 illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
5156 grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
5157 clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
5158 Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
5159 Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
5160 "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
5161
5162 A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
5163 melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
5164 another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
5165 and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
5166 conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
5167 sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
5168 of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
5169 was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
5170 religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
5171 insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
5172 banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
5173 to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
5174 There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
5175 obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
5176 that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
5177 the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
5178 enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
5179
5180 Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
5181 read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
5182 endure an extract from it:
5183
5184 "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
5185 emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
5186 anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
5187 sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
5188 voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
5189 festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
5190 graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
5191 through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
5192 brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
5193
5194 "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
5195 and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
5196 the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
5197 dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
5198 her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
5199 than the last. But after a while she finds that
5200 beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
5201 flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
5202 harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
5203 charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
5204 she turns away with the conviction that earthly
5205 pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
5206
5207 And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
5208 time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
5209 sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
5210 with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
5211
5212 Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
5213 paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
5214 stanzas of it will do:
5215
5216 "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
5217
5218 "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
5219 But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
5220 Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
5221 And burning recollections throng my brow!
5222 For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
5223 Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
5224 Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
5225 And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
5226
5227 "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
5228 Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
5229 'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
5230 'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
5231 Welcome and home were mine within this State,
5232 Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
5233 And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
5234 When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
5235
5236 There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
5237 very satisfactory, nevertheless.
5238
5239 Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
5240 lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
5241 began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
5242
5243 "A VISION
5244
5245 "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
5246 throne on high not a single star quivered; but
5247 the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
5248 constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
5249 terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
5250 through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
5251 to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
5252 the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
5253 winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
5254 homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
5255 their aid the wildness of the scene.
5256
5257 "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
5258 sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
5259
5260 "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
5261 and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
5262 in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
5263 those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
5264 of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
5265 queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
5266 transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
5267 failed to make even a sound, and but for the
5268 magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
5269 other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
5270 away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
5271 rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
5272 the robe of December, as she pointed to the
5273 contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
5274 the two beings presented."
5275
5276 This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
5277 a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
5278 the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
5279 effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
5280 prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
5281 was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
5282 Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
5283
5284 It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
5285 which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
5286 referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
5287
5288 Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
5289 aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
5290 America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
5291 made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
5292 titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
5293 himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
5294 distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
5295 He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
5296 to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
5297 him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
5298 even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
5299 pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
5300 came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
5301 tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
5302 descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
5303 downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
5304 and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
5305 head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
5306 desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
5307 instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
5308 blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
5309 had GILDED it!
5310
5311 That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
5312
5313 NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
5314 this chapter are taken without alteration from a
5315 volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
5316 Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
5317 the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
5318 happier than any mere imitations could be.
5319
5320
5321
5322 CHAPTER XXII
5323
5324 TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
5325 the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
5326 smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
5327 found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
5328 surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
5329 thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
5330 swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
5331 chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
5332 from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
5333 --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
5334 fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
5335 apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
5336 he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
5337 about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
5338 hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
5339 and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
5340 discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
5341 mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
5342 injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
5343 Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
5344 trust a man like that again.
5345
5346 The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
5347 to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
5348 --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
5349 to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
5350 took the desire away, and the charm of it.
5351
5352 Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
5353 to hang a little heavily on his hands.
5354
5355 He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
5356 he abandoned it.
5357
5358 The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
5359 sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
5360 happy for two days.
5361
5362 Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
5363 hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
5364 the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
5365 Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
5366 twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
5367
5368 A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
5369 tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
5370 girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
5371
5372 A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
5373 village duller and drearier than ever.
5374
5375 There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
5376 delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
5377
5378 Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
5379 parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
5380
5381 The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
5382 cancer for permanency and pain.
5383
5384 Then came the measles.
5385
5386 During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
5387 happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
5388 upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
5389 had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
5390 "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
5391 even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
5392 sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
5393 everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
5394 away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
5395 visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
5396 called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
5397 warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
5398 and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
5399 Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
5400 heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
5401 the town was lost, forever and forever.
5402
5403 And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
5404 awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
5405 head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
5406 doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
5407 about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
5408 to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
5409 have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
5410 battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
5411 getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
5412 from under an insect like himself.
5413
5414 By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
5415 object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
5416 second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
5417
5418 The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
5419 he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
5420 at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
5421 lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
5422 listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
5423 juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
5424 victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
5425 stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
5426
5427
5428
5429 CHAPTER XXIII
5430
5431 AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
5432 trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
5433 talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
5434 the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
5435 fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
5436 hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
5437 knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
5438 comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
5439 all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
5440 It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
5441 divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
5442 wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
5443
5444 "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
5445
5446 "'Bout what?"
5447
5448 "You know what."
5449
5450 "Oh--'course I haven't."
5451
5452 "Never a word?"
5453
5454 "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
5455
5456 "Well, I was afeard."
5457
5458 "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
5459 YOU know that."
5460
5461 Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
5462
5463 "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
5464
5465 "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
5466 they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
5467
5468 "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
5469 mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
5470
5471 "I'm agreed."
5472
5473 So they swore again with dread solemnities.
5474
5475 "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
5476
5477 "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
5478 time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
5479
5480 "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
5481 Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
5482
5483 "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
5484 ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
5485 to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
5486 that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
5487 good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
5488 and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
5489
5490 "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
5491 line. I wish we could get him out of there."
5492
5493 "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
5494 good; they'd ketch him again."
5495
5496 "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
5497 dickens when he never done--that."
5498
5499 "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
5500 villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
5501
5502 "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
5503 was to get free they'd lynch him."
5504
5505 "And they'd do it, too."
5506
5507 The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
5508 twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
5509 of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
5510 something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
5511 nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
5512 this luckless captive.
5513
5514 The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
5515 and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
5516 and there were no guards.
5517
5518 His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
5519 before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
5520 treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
5521
5522 "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
5523 town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
5524 'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
5525 good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
5526 all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
5527 don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
5528 boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
5529 only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
5530 right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
5531 talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
5532 me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
5533 ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
5534 comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
5535 trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
5536 faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
5537 touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
5538 mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
5539 a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
5540
5541 Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
5542 horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
5543 drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
5544 to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
5545 avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
5546 dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
5547 ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
5548 heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
5549 relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
5550 village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
5551 unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
5552 jury's verdict would be.
5553
5554 Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
5555 was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
5556 sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
5557 this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
5558 in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
5559 their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
5560 hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
5561 the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
5562 stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
5563 the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
5564 among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
5565 details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
5566 that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
5567
5568 Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
5569 washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
5570 was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
5571 further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
5572
5573 "Take the witness."
5574
5575 The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
5576 his own counsel said:
5577
5578 "I have no questions to ask him."
5579
5580 The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
5581 Counsel for the prosecution said:
5582
5583 "Take the witness."
5584
5585 "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
5586
5587 A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
5588 possession.
5589
5590 "Take the witness."
5591
5592 Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
5593 began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
5594 client's life without an effort?
5595
5596 Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
5597 brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
5598 stand without being cross-questioned.
5599
5600 Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
5601 graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
5602 brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
5603 by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
5604 expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
5605 Counsel for the prosecution now said:
5606
5607 "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
5608 have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
5609 upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
5610
5611 A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
5612 rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
5613 the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
5614 testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
5615
5616 "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
5617 foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
5618 while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
5619 produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
5620 plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
5621
5622 A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
5623 excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
5624 upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
5625 wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
5626
5627 "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
5628 hour of midnight?"
5629
5630 Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
5631 audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
5632 few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
5633 managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
5634 hear:
5635
5636 "In the graveyard!"
5637
5638 "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
5639
5640 "In the graveyard."
5641
5642 A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
5643
5644 "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
5645
5646 "Yes, sir."
5647
5648 "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
5649
5650 "Near as I am to you."
5651
5652 "Were you hidden, or not?"
5653
5654 "I was hid."
5655
5656 "Where?"
5657
5658 "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
5659
5660 Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
5661
5662 "Any one with you?"
5663
5664 "Yes, sir. I went there with--"
5665
5666 "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
5667 will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
5668 you."
5669
5670 Tom hesitated and looked confused.
5671
5672 "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
5673 respectable. What did you take there?"
5674
5675 "Only a--a--dead cat."
5676
5677 There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
5678
5679 "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
5680 everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
5681 and don't be afraid."
5682
5683 Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
5684 words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
5685 but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
5686 and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
5687 time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
5688 pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
5689
5690 "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
5691 Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
5692
5693 Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
5694 way through all opposers, and was gone!
5695
5696
5697
5698 CHAPTER XXIV
5699
5700 TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
5701 the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
5702 paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
5703 President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
5704
5705 As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
5706 and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
5707 of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
5708 fault with it.
5709
5710 Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
5711 were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
5712 with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
5713 stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
5714 wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
5715 the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
5716 that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
5717 Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
5718 The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
5719 that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
5720 lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
5721 sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
5722 confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
5723
5724 Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
5725 he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
5726
5727 Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
5728 other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
5729 a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
5730
5731 Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
5732 Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
5733 detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
5734 looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
5735 that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
5736 can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
5737 through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
5738
5739 The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
5740 weight of apprehension.
5741
5742
5743
5744 CHAPTER XXV
5745
5746 THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
5747 a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
5748 desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
5749 Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
5750 fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
5751 would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
5752 him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
5753 hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
5754 capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
5755 which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
5756
5757 "Oh, most anywhere."
5758
5759 "Why, is it hid all around?"
5760
5761 "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
5762 --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
5763 limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
5764 mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
5765
5766 "Who hides it?"
5767
5768 "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
5769 sup'rintendents?"
5770
5771 "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
5772 a good time."
5773
5774 "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
5775 leave it there."
5776
5777 "Don't they come after it any more?"
5778
5779 "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
5780 else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
5781 and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
5782 marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
5783 mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
5784
5785 "Hyro--which?"
5786
5787 "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
5788 anything."
5789
5790 "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
5791
5792 "No."
5793
5794 "Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
5795
5796 "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
5797 on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
5798 Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
5799 some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
5800 and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
5801
5802 "Is it under all of them?"
5803
5804 "How you talk! No!"
5805
5806 "Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
5807
5808 "Go for all of 'em!"
5809
5810 "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
5811
5812 "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
5813 dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
5814 How's that?"
5815
5816 Huck's eyes glowed.
5817
5818 "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
5819 dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
5820
5821 "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
5822 of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
5823 worth six bits or a dollar."
5824
5825 "No! Is that so?"
5826
5827 "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
5828
5829 "Not as I remember."
5830
5831 "Oh, kings have slathers of them."
5832
5833 "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
5834
5835 "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
5836 of 'em hopping around."
5837
5838 "Do they hop?"
5839
5840 "Hop?--your granny! No!"
5841
5842 "Well, what did you say they did, for?"
5843
5844 "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
5845 they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
5846 you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
5847
5848 "Richard? What's his other name?"
5849
5850 "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
5851
5852 "No?"
5853
5854 "But they don't."
5855
5856 "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
5857 and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
5858 going to dig first?"
5859
5860 "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
5861 hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
5862
5863 "I'm agreed."
5864
5865 So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
5866 three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
5867 down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
5868
5869 "I like this," said Tom.
5870
5871 "So do I."
5872
5873 "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
5874 share?"
5875
5876 "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
5877 every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
5878
5879 "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
5880
5881 "Save it? What for?"
5882
5883 "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
5884
5885 "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
5886 day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
5887 clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
5888
5889 "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
5890 necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
5891
5892 "Married!"
5893
5894 "That's it."
5895
5896 "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
5897
5898 "Wait--you'll see."
5899
5900 "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
5901 mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
5902 well."
5903
5904 "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
5905
5906 "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
5907 better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
5908 of the gal?"
5909
5910 "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
5911
5912 "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
5913 right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
5914
5915 "I'll tell you some time--not now."
5916
5917 "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
5918 than ever."
5919
5920 "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
5921 we'll go to digging."
5922
5923 They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
5924 another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
5925
5926 "Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
5927
5928 "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
5929 right place."
5930
5931 So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
5932 but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
5933 time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
5934 his brow with his sleeve, and said:
5935
5936 "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
5937
5938 "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
5939 Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
5940
5941 "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
5942 us, Tom? It's on her land."
5943
5944 "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
5945 of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
5946 whose land it's on."
5947
5948 That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
5949
5950 "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
5951
5952 "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
5953 interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
5954
5955 "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
5956
5957 "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
5958 is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
5959 shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
5960
5961 "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
5962 hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
5963 Can you get out?"
5964
5965 "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
5966 sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go
5967 for it."
5968
5969 "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night."
5970
5971 "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes."
5972
5973 The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in
5974 the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by
5975 old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked
5976 in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the
5977 distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were
5978 subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged
5979 that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to
5980 dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and
5981 their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened,
5982 but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon
5983 something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone
5984 or a chunk. At last Tom said:
5985
5986 "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again."
5987
5988 "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot."
5989
5990 "I know it, but then there's another thing."
5991
5992 "What's that?".
5993
5994 "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too
5995 early."
5996
5997 Huck dropped his shovel.
5998
5999 "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this
6000 one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of
6001 thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts
6002 a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time;
6003 and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front
6004 a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here."
6005
6006 "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a
6007 dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it."
6008
6009 "Lordy!"
6010
6011 "Yes, they do. I've always heard that."
6012
6013 "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A
6014 body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure."
6015
6016 "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to
6017 stick his skull out and say something!"
6018
6019 "Don't Tom! It's awful."
6020
6021 "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit."
6022
6023 "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else."
6024
6025 "All right, I reckon we better."
6026
6027 "What'll it be?"
6028
6029 Tom considered awhile; and then said:
6030
6031 "The ha'nted house. That's it!"
6032
6033 "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight
6034 worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come
6035 sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your
6036 shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I
6037 couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could."
6038
6039 "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't
6040 hender us from digging there in the daytime."
6041
6042 "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that
6043 ha'nted house in the day nor the night."
6044
6045 "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been
6046 murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except
6047 in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular
6048 ghosts."
6049
6050 "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom,
6051 you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to
6052 reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em."
6053
6054 "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so
6055 what's the use of our being afeard?"
6056
6057 "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I
6058 reckon it's taking chances."
6059
6060 They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of
6061 the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly
6062 isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very
6063 doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a
6064 corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to
6065 see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as
6066 befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the
6067 right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way
6068 homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff
6069 Hill.
6070
6071
6072
6073 CHAPTER XXVI
6074
6075 ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had
6076 come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house;
6077 Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said:
6078
6079 "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?"
6080
6081 Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted
6082 his eyes with a startled look in them--
6083
6084 "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!"
6085
6086 "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was
6087 Friday."
6088
6089 "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an
6090 awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday."
6091
6092 "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but
6093 Friday ain't."
6094
6095 "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it
6096 out, Huck."
6097
6098 "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had
6099 a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats."
6100
6101 "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?"
6102
6103 "No."
6104
6105 "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that
6106 there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty
6107 sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play.
6108 Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?"
6109
6110 "No. Who's Robin Hood?"
6111
6112 "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the
6113 best. He was a robber."
6114
6115 "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?"
6116
6117 "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like.
6118 But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with
6119 'em perfectly square."
6120
6121 "Well, he must 'a' been a brick."
6122
6123 "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was.
6124 They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in
6125 England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow
6126 and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half."
6127
6128 "What's a YEW bow?"
6129
6130 "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that
6131 dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll
6132 play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you."
6133
6134 "I'm agreed."
6135
6136 So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a
6137 yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the
6138 morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink
6139 into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of
6140 the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff
6141 Hill.
6142
6143 On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again.
6144 They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in
6145 their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there
6146 were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting
6147 down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and
6148 turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this
6149 time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling
6150 that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the
6151 requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting.
6152
6153 When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and
6154 grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun,
6155 and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the
6156 place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they
6157 crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown,
6158 floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a
6159 ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and
6160 abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened
6161 pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound,
6162 and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat.
6163
6164 In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the
6165 place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own
6166 boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs.
6167 This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring
6168 each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw
6169 their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same
6170 signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised
6171 mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their
6172 courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and
6173 begin work when--
6174
6175 "Sh!" said Tom.
6176
6177 "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright.
6178
6179 "Sh!... There!... Hear it?"
6180
6181 "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!"
6182
6183 "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door."
6184
6185 The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to
6186 knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear.
6187
6188 "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper
6189 another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!"
6190
6191 Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and
6192 dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw
6193 t'other man before."
6194
6195 "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant
6196 in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white
6197 whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore
6198 green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice;
6199 they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the
6200 wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less
6201 guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded:
6202
6203 "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's
6204 dangerous."
6205
6206 "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast
6207 surprise of the boys. "Milksop!"
6208
6209 This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was
6210 silence for some time. Then Joe said:
6211
6212 "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come
6213 of it."
6214
6215 "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about.
6216 'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed."
6217
6218 "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody
6219 would suspicion us that saw us."
6220
6221 "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that
6222 fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only
6223 it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys
6224 playing over there on the hill right in full view."
6225
6226 "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this
6227 remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was
6228 Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they
6229 had waited a year.
6230
6231 The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and
6232 thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said:
6233
6234 "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there
6235 till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town
6236 just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've
6237 spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for
6238 Texas! We'll leg it together!"
6239
6240 This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun
6241 Joe said:
6242
6243 "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch."
6244
6245 He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade
6246 stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher
6247 began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore
6248 now.
6249
6250 The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered:
6251
6252 "Now's our chance--come!"
6253
6254 Huck said:
6255
6256 "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake."
6257
6258 Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and
6259 started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak
6260 from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He
6261 never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging
6262 moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity
6263 growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun
6264 was setting.
6265
6266 Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly
6267 upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him
6268 up with his foot and said:
6269
6270 "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's
6271 happened."
6272
6273 "My! have I been asleep?"
6274
6275 "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we
6276 do with what little swag we've got left?"
6277
6278 "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to
6279 take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's
6280 something to carry."
6281
6282 "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more."
6283
6284 "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better."
6285
6286 "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right
6287 chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good
6288 place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep."
6289
6290 "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down,
6291 raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that
6292 jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for
6293 himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter,
6294 who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife.
6295
6296 The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant.
6297 With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of
6298 it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to
6299 make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the
6300 happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to
6301 where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and
6302 easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW
6303 we're here!"
6304
6305 Joe's knife struck upon something.
6306
6307 "Hello!" said he.
6308
6309 "What is it?" said his comrade.
6310
6311 "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and
6312 we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole."
6313
6314 He reached his hand in and drew it out--
6315
6316 "Man, it's money!"
6317
6318 The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys
6319 above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted.
6320
6321 Joe's comrade said:
6322
6323 "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst
6324 the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a
6325 minute ago."
6326
6327 He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick,
6328 looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to
6329 himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was
6330 not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the
6331 slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in
6332 blissful silence.
6333
6334 "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe.
6335
6336 "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one
6337 summer," the stranger observed.
6338
6339 "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say."
6340
6341 "Now you won't need to do that job."
6342
6343 The half-breed frowned. Said he:
6344
6345 "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't
6346 robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his
6347 eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go
6348 home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me."
6349
6350 "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?"
6351
6352 "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no!
6353 [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh
6354 earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What
6355 business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth
6356 on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard
6357 anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and
6358 see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my
6359 den."
6360
6361 "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number
6362 One?"
6363
6364 "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common."
6365
6366 "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start."
6367
6368 Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously
6369 peeping out. Presently he said:
6370
6371 "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be
6372 up-stairs?"
6373
6374 The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife,
6375 halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The
6376 boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came
6377 creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke
6378 the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the
6379 closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed
6380 on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered
6381 himself up cursing, and his comrade said:
6382
6383 "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up
6384 there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now,
6385 and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes
6386 --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my
6387 opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and
6388 took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running
6389 yet."
6390
6391 Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight
6392 was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving.
6393 Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening
6394 twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box.
6395
6396 Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them
6397 through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they.
6398 They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take
6399 the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too
6400 much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them
6401 take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would
6402 have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait
6403 there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the
6404 misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that
6405 the tools were ever brought there!
6406
6407 They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come
6408 to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him
6409 to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought
6410 occurred to Tom.
6411
6412 "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!"
6413
6414 "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting.
6415
6416 They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to
6417 believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he
6418 might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified.
6419
6420 Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company
6421 would be a palpable improvement, he thought.
6422
6423
6424
6425 CHAPTER XXVII
6426
6427 THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night.
6428 Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it
6429 wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and
6430 wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay
6431 in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he
6432 noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if
6433 they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it
6434 occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There
6435 was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the
6436 quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen
6437 as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys
6438 of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references
6439 to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and
6440 that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed
6441 for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found
6442 in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden
6443 treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a
6444 handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable
6445 dollars.
6446
6447 But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer
6448 under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found
6449 himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a
6450 dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch
6451 a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the
6452 gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and
6453 looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the
6454 subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to
6455 have been only a dream.
6456
6457 "Hello, Huck!"
6458
6459 "Hello, yourself."
6460
6461 Silence, for a minute.
6462
6463 "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got
6464 the money. Oh, ain't it awful!"
6465
6466 "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was.
6467 Dog'd if I don't, Huck."
6468
6469 "What ain't a dream?"
6470
6471 "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was."
6472
6473 "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream
6474 it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish
6475 devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!"
6476
6477 "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!"
6478
6479 "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for
6480 such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see
6481 him, anyway."
6482
6483 "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to
6484 his Number Two."
6485
6486 "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't
6487 make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?"
6488
6489 "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!"
6490
6491 "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this
6492 one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here."
6493
6494 "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a
6495 room--in a tavern, you know!"
6496
6497 "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out
6498 quick."
6499
6500 "You stay here, Huck, till I come."
6501
6502 Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public
6503 places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No.
6504 2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied.
6505 In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The
6506 tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he
6507 never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did
6508 not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some
6509 little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the
6510 mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was
6511 "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before.
6512
6513 "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2
6514 we're after."
6515
6516 "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?"
6517
6518 "Lemme think."
6519
6520 Tom thought a long time. Then he said:
6521
6522 "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out
6523 into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap
6524 of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find,
6525 and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there
6526 and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he
6527 said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a
6528 chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if
6529 he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place."
6530
6531 "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!"
6532
6533 "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did,
6534 maybe he'd never think anything."
6535
6536 "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono.
6537 I'll try."
6538
6539 "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found
6540 out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money."
6541
6542 "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!"
6543
6544 "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't."
6545
6546
6547
6548 CHAPTER XXVIII
6549
6550 THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung
6551 about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the
6552 alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the
6553 alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the
6554 tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with
6555 the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on,
6556 Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the
6557 keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and
6558 retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve.
6559
6560 Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday
6561 night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's
6562 old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the
6563 lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before
6564 midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones
6565 thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had
6566 entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of
6567 darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by
6568 occasional mutterings of distant thunder.
6569
6570 Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the
6571 towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern.
6572 Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a
6573 season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a
6574 mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it
6575 would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive
6576 yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have
6577 fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and
6578 excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and
6579 closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and
6580 momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away
6581 his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to
6582 inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the
6583 way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came
6584 tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!"
6585
6586 He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty
6587 or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys
6588 never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house
6589 at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter
6590 the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath
6591 he said:
6592
6593 "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could;
6594 but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly
6595 get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either.
6596 Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and
6597 open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the
6598 towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!"
6599
6600 "What!--what'd you see, Tom?"
6601
6602 "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!"
6603
6604 "No!"
6605
6606 "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old
6607 patch on his eye and his arms spread out."
6608
6609 "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?"
6610
6611 "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and
6612 started!"
6613
6614 "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!"
6615
6616 "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it."
6617
6618 "Say, Tom, did you see that box?"
6619
6620 "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't
6621 see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the
6622 floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the
6623 room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?"
6624
6625 "How?"
6626
6627 "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have
6628 got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?"
6629
6630 "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But
6631 say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's
6632 drunk."
6633
6634 "It is, that! You try it!"
6635
6636 Huck shuddered.
6637
6638 "Well, no--I reckon not."
6639
6640 "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't
6641 enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it."
6642
6643 There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said:
6644
6645 "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun
6646 Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll
6647 be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll
6648 snatch that box quicker'n lightning."
6649
6650 "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it
6651 every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job."
6652
6653 "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a
6654 block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window
6655 and that'll fetch me."
6656
6657 "Agreed, and good as wheat!"
6658
6659 "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be
6660 daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will
6661 you?"
6662
6663 "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night
6664 for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night."
6665
6666 "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?"
6667
6668 "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man,
6669 Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and
6670 any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can
6671 spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't
6672 ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat
6673 WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when
6674 he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing."
6675
6676 "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't
6677 come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night,
6678 just skip right around and maow."
6679
6680
6681
6682 CHAPTER XXIX
6683
6684 THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news
6685 --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both
6686 Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment,
6687 and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and
6688 they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper"
6689 with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned
6690 in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint
6691 the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she
6692 consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more
6693 moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway
6694 the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation
6695 and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep
6696 awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's
6697 "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers
6698 with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night.
6699
6700 Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and
6701 rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything
6702 was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar
6703 the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe
6704 enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few
6705 young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat
6706 was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the
6707 main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss
6708 the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs.
6709 Thatcher said to Becky, was:
6710
6711 "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night
6712 with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child."
6713
6714 "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma."
6715
6716 "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble."
6717
6718 Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky:
6719
6720 "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's
6721 we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll
6722 have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll
6723 be awful glad to have us."
6724
6725 "Oh, that will be fun!"
6726
6727 Then Becky reflected a moment and said:
6728
6729 "But what will mamma say?"
6730
6731 "How'll she ever know?"
6732
6733 The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly:
6734
6735 "I reckon it's wrong--but--"
6736
6737 "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she
6738 wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if
6739 she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!"
6740
6741 The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and
6742 Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say
6743 nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to
6744 Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The
6745 thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he
6746 could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he
6747 give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so
6748 why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the
6749 evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined
6750 to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of
6751 the box of money another time that day.
6752
6753 Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody
6754 hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest
6755 distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and
6756 laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone
6757 through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified
6758 with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things
6759 began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat
6760 in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted:
6761
6762 "Who's ready for the cave?"
6763
6764 Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there
6765 was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the
6766 hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door
6767 stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and
6768 walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat.
6769 It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look
6770 out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of
6771 the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment
6772 a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a
6773 struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon
6774 knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter
6775 and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession
6776 went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering
6777 rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their
6778 point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more
6779 than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still
6780 narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave
6781 was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and
6782 out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and
6783 nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and
6784 never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down,
6785 and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth
6786 under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave.
6787 That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of
6788 it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion.
6789 Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one.
6790
6791 The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a
6792 mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch
6793 avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by
6794 surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able
6795 to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond
6796 the "known" ground.
6797
6798 By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth
6799 of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow
6800 drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of
6801 the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no
6802 note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had
6803 been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's
6804 adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat
6805 with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for
6806 the wasted time but the captain of the craft.
6807
6808 Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went
6809 glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young
6810 people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly
6811 tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop
6812 at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his
6813 attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten
6814 o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began
6815 to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village
6816 betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the
6817 silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were
6818 put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long
6819 time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use?
6820 Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in?
6821
6822 A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The
6823 alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store.
6824 The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have
6825 something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to
6826 remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men
6827 would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would
6828 stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for
6829 security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out
6830 and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing
6831 them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible.
6832
6833 They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left
6834 up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to
6835 the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the
6836 old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and
6837 still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old
6838 quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the
6839 summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach
6840 bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and
6841 shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him.
6842 He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was
6843 gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened;
6844 no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own
6845 heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no
6846 footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with
6847 winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him!
6848 Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then
6849 he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at
6850 once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He
6851 knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile
6852 leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them
6853 bury it there; it won't be hard to find.
6854
6855 Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's:
6856
6857 "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is."
6858
6859 "I can't see any."
6860
6861 This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A
6862 deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job!
6863 His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had
6864 been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to
6865 murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he
6866 didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and
6867 more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun
6868 Joe's next--which was--
6869
6870 "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't
6871 you?"
6872
6873 "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up."
6874
6875 "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and
6876 maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you
6877 before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was
6878 rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the
6879 justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all.
6880 It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped
6881 in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on!
6882 HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But
6883 I'll take it out of HER."
6884
6885 "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!"
6886
6887 "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was
6888 here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't
6889 kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch
6890 her ears like a sow!"
6891
6892 "By God, that's--"
6893
6894 "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie
6895 her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry,
6896 if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake
6897 --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll
6898 kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill
6899 her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this
6900 business."
6901
6902 "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the
6903 better--I'm all in a shiver."
6904
6905 "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you,
6906 first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's
6907 no hurry."
6908
6909 Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful
6910 than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped
6911 gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing,
6912 one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one
6913 side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same
6914 elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig
6915 snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was
6916 no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now
6917 he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned
6918 himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but
6919 cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so
6920 he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he
6921 reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads
6922 of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows.
6923
6924 "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?"
6925
6926 "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything."
6927
6928 "Why, who are you?"
6929
6930 "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!"
6931
6932 "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I
6933 judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble."
6934
6935 "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he
6936 got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good
6937 friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll
6938 promise you won't ever say it was me."
6939
6940 "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!"
6941 exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad."
6942
6943 Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the
6944 hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in
6945 their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great
6946 bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence,
6947 and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry.
6948
6949 Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill
6950 as fast as his legs could carry him.
6951
6952
6953
6954 CHAPTER XXX
6955
6956 AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck
6957 came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door.
6958 The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a
6959 hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call
6960 came from a window:
6961
6962 "Who's there!"
6963
6964 Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone:
6965
6966 "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!"
6967
6968 "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!"
6969
6970 These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the
6971 pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing
6972 word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly
6973 unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his
6974 brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves.
6975
6976 "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be
6977 ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too
6978 --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and
6979 stop here last night."
6980
6981 "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the
6982 pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz
6983 I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I
6984 didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead."
6985
6986 "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but
6987 there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they
6988 ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right
6989 where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along
6990 on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar
6991 that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It
6992 was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use
6993 --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol
6994 raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get
6995 out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place
6996 where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy,
6997 those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we
6998 never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their
6999 bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the
7000 sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the
7001 constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river
7002 bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to
7003 beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had
7004 some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal.
7005 But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?"
7006
7007 "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them."
7008
7009 "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!"
7010
7011 "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or
7012 twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--"
7013
7014 "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods
7015 back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys,
7016 and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!"
7017
7018 The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room
7019 Huck sprang up and exclaimed:
7020
7021 "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh,
7022 please!"
7023
7024 "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of
7025 what you did."
7026
7027 "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!"
7028
7029 When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said:
7030
7031 "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?"
7032
7033 Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too
7034 much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he
7035 knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for
7036 knowing it, sure.
7037
7038 The old man promised secrecy once more, and said:
7039
7040 "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking
7041 suspicious?"
7042
7043 Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said:
7044
7045 "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so,
7046 and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on
7047 account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way
7048 of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I
7049 come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I
7050 got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed
7051 up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes
7052 these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their
7053 arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one
7054 wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up
7055 their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard,
7056 by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a
7057 rusty, ragged-looking devil."
7058
7059 "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?"
7060
7061 This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said:
7062
7063 "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did."
7064
7065 "Then they went on, and you--"
7066
7067 "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they
7068 sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the
7069 dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard
7070 swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--"
7071
7072 "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!"
7073
7074 Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep
7075 the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might
7076 be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in
7077 spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his
7078 scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after
7079 blunder. Presently the Welshman said:
7080
7081 "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head
7082 for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard
7083 is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you
7084 can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that
7085 you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me
7086 --I won't betray you."
7087
7088 Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over
7089 and whispered in his ear:
7090
7091 "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!"
7092
7093 The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said:
7094
7095 "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and
7096 slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because
7097 white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a
7098 different matter altogether."
7099
7100 During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man
7101 said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going
7102 to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for
7103 marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of--
7104
7105 "Of WHAT?"
7106
7107 If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more
7108 stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring
7109 wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The
7110 Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten
7111 --then replied:
7112
7113 "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?"
7114
7115 Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The
7116 Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said:
7117
7118 "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But
7119 what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?"
7120
7121 Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would
7122 have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing
7123 suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a
7124 senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture
7125 he uttered it--feebly:
7126
7127 "Sunday-school books, maybe."
7128
7129 Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud
7130 and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot,
7131 and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket,
7132 because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added:
7133
7134 "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no
7135 wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come
7136 out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope."
7137
7138 Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such
7139 a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel
7140 brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the
7141 talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure,
7142 however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a
7143 captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole
7144 he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond
7145 all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was
7146 at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be
7147 drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still
7148 in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom
7149 could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of
7150 interruption.
7151
7152 Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck
7153 jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even
7154 remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and
7155 gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of
7156 citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news
7157 had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the
7158 visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken.
7159
7160 "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more
7161 beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow
7162 me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him."
7163
7164 Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled
7165 the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of
7166 his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he
7167 refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the
7168 widow said:
7169
7170 "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that
7171 noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?"
7172
7173 "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come
7174 again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of
7175 waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard
7176 at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back."
7177
7178 More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a
7179 couple of hours more.
7180
7181 There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody
7182 was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came
7183 that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the
7184 sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs.
7185 Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said:
7186
7187 "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be
7188 tired to death."
7189
7190 "Your Becky?"
7191
7192 "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?"
7193
7194 "Why, no."
7195
7196 Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly,
7197 talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said:
7198
7199 "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a
7200 boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last
7201 night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to
7202 settle with him."
7203
7204 Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever.
7205
7206 "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy.
7207 A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face.
7208
7209 "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?"
7210
7211 "No'm."
7212
7213 "When did you see him last?"
7214
7215 Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had
7216 stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding
7217 uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were
7218 anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not
7219 noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the
7220 homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was
7221 missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were
7222 still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to
7223 crying and wringing her hands.
7224
7225 The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to
7226 street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the
7227 whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant
7228 insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled,
7229 skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror
7230 was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and
7231 river toward the cave.
7232
7233 All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women
7234 visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They
7235 cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the
7236 tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at
7237 last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food."
7238 Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher
7239 sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they
7240 conveyed no real cheer.
7241
7242 The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with
7243 candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck
7244 still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with
7245 fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came
7246 and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him,
7247 because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's,
7248 and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The
7249 Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said:
7250
7251 "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off.
7252 He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his
7253 hands."
7254
7255 Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the
7256 village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the
7257 news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were
7258 being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner
7259 and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one
7260 wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting
7261 hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent
7262 their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one
7263 place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names
7264 "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with
7265 candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs.
7266 Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the
7267 last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial
7268 of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from
7269 the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and
7270 then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a
7271 glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the
7272 echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the
7273 children were not there; it was only a searcher's light.
7274
7275 Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and
7276 the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything.
7277 The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the
7278 Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the
7279 public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck
7280 feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly
7281 dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance
7282 Tavern since he had been ill.
7283
7284 "Yes," said the widow.
7285
7286 Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed:
7287
7288 "What? What was it?"
7289
7290 "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn
7291 you did give me!"
7292
7293 "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer
7294 that found it?"
7295
7296 The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you
7297 before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!"
7298
7299 Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great
7300 powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone
7301 forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should
7302 cry.
7303
7304 These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the
7305 weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself:
7306
7307 "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody
7308 could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope
7309 enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching."
7310
7311
7312
7313 CHAPTER XXXI
7314
7315 NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped
7316 along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the
7317 familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather
7318 over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral,"
7319 "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking
7320 began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion
7321 began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous
7322 avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of
7323 names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky
7324 walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and
7325 talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave
7326 whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an
7327 overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a
7328 little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone
7329 sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and
7330 ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his
7331 small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's
7332 gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural
7333 stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the
7334 ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call,
7335 and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their
7336 quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of
7337 the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to
7338 tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern,
7339 from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the
7340 length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it,
7341 wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous
7342 passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching
7343 spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering
7344 crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by
7345 many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great
7346 stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless
7347 water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed
7348 themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the
7349 creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and
7350 darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of
7351 this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the
7352 first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck
7353 Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the
7354 cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives
7355 plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the
7356 perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which
7357 stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows.
7358 He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best
7359 to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep
7360 stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the
7361 children. Becky said:
7362
7363 "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of
7364 the others."
7365
7366 "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know
7367 how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't
7368 hear them here."
7369
7370 Becky grew apprehensive.
7371
7372 "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back."
7373
7374 "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better."
7375
7376 "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me."
7377
7378 "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles
7379 out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go
7380 through there."
7381
7382 "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the
7383 girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities.
7384
7385 They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long
7386 way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything
7387 familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time
7388 Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging
7389 sign, and he would say cheerily:
7390
7391 "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right
7392 away!"
7393
7394 But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently
7395 began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate
7396 hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all
7397 right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words
7398 had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!"
7399 Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep
7400 back the tears, but they would come. At last she said:
7401
7402 "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get
7403 worse and worse off all the time."
7404
7405 "Listen!" said he.
7406
7407 Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were
7408 conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the
7409 empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that
7410 resembled a ripple of mocking laughter.
7411
7412 "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky.
7413
7414 "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and
7415 he shouted again.
7416
7417 The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it
7418 so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened;
7419 but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and
7420 hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain
7421 indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he
7422 could not find his way back!
7423
7424 "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!"
7425
7426 "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want
7427 to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up."
7428
7429 "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful
7430 place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!"
7431
7432 She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom
7433 was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He
7434 sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his
7435 bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing
7436 regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom
7437 begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell
7438 to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable
7439 situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope
7440 again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he
7441 would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than
7442 she, she said.
7443
7444 So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do
7445 was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of
7446 reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its
7447 nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age
7448 and familiarity with failure.
7449
7450 By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant
7451 so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died
7452 again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in
7453 his pockets--yet he must economize.
7454
7455 By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to
7456 pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time
7457 was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any
7458 direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down
7459 was to invite death and shorten its pursuit.
7460
7461 At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat
7462 down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends
7463 there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried,
7464 and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his
7465 encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like
7466 sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to
7467 sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it
7468 grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and
7469 by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected
7470 somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts
7471 wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in
7472 his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was
7473 stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it.
7474
7475 "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I
7476 don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again."
7477
7478 "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find
7479 the way out."
7480
7481 "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream.
7482 I reckon we are going there."
7483
7484 "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying."
7485
7486 They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried
7487 to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was
7488 that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not
7489 be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they
7490 could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for
7491 dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and
7492 Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky
7493 said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to
7494 hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom
7495 fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay.
7496 Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke
7497 the silence:
7498
7499 "Tom, I am so hungry!"
7500
7501 Tom took something out of his pocket.
7502
7503 "Do you remember this?" said he.
7504
7505 Becky almost smiled.
7506
7507 "It's our wedding-cake, Tom."
7508
7509 "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got."
7510
7511 "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up
7512 people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--"
7513
7514 She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky
7515 ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was
7516 abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky
7517 suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he
7518 said:
7519
7520 "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?"
7521
7522 Becky's face paled, but she thought she could.
7523
7524 "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink.
7525 That little piece is our last candle!"
7526
7527 Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to
7528 comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said:
7529
7530 "Tom!"
7531
7532 "Well, Becky?"
7533
7534 "They'll miss us and hunt for us!"
7535
7536 "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!"
7537
7538 "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom."
7539
7540 "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are."
7541
7542 "When would they miss us, Tom?"
7543
7544 "When they get back to the boat, I reckon."
7545
7546 "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?"
7547
7548 "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they
7549 got home."
7550
7551 A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw
7552 that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night!
7553 The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of
7554 grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers
7555 also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher
7556 discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's.
7557
7558 The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched
7559 it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand
7560 alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin
7561 column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of
7562 utter darkness reigned!
7563
7564 How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that
7565 she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew
7566 was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of
7567 a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said
7568 it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk,
7569 but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said
7570 that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was
7571 going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it;
7572 but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he
7573 tried it no more.
7574
7575 The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again.
7576 A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it.
7577 But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only
7578 whetted desire.
7579
7580 By-and-by Tom said:
7581
7582 "SH! Did you hear that?"
7583
7584 Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the
7585 faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky
7586 by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction.
7587 Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently
7588 a little nearer.
7589
7590 "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all
7591 right now!"
7592
7593 The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was
7594 slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be
7595 guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be
7596 three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any
7597 rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could.
7598 No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They
7599 listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a
7600 moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking
7601 misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He
7602 talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no
7603 sounds came again.
7604
7605 The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time
7606 dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom
7607 believed it must be Tuesday by this time.
7608
7609 Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It
7610 would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the
7611 heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to
7612 a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the
7613 line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended
7614 in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and
7615 then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands
7616 conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the
7617 right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding
7618 a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout,
7619 and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun
7620 Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified
7621 the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get
7622 himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his
7623 voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the
7624 echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he
7625 reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to
7626 himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he
7627 would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of
7628 meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was
7629 he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck."
7630
7631 But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run.
7632 Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought
7633 changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed
7634 that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now,
7635 and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another
7636 passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But
7637 Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be
7638 roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would
7639 not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he
7640 chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak
7641 to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he
7642 would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over.
7643
7644 Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a
7645 show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the
7646 cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one
7647 of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick
7648 with bodings of coming doom.
7649
7650
7651
7652 CHAPTER XXXII
7653
7654 TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St.
7655 Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public
7656 prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private
7657 prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good
7658 news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the
7659 quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain
7660 the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a
7661 great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to
7662 hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute
7663 at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had
7664 drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost
7665 white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn.
7666
7667 Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village
7668 bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad
7669 people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're
7670 found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed
7671 itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open
7672 carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its
7673 homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring
7674 huzzah after huzzah!
7675
7676 The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the
7677 greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour
7678 a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized
7679 the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to
7680 speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place.
7681
7682 Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It
7683 would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with
7684 the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay
7685 upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of
7686 the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it
7687 withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on
7688 an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his
7689 kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of
7690 the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off
7691 speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it,
7692 pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad
7693 Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would
7694 not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that
7695 passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good
7696 news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was
7697 tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he
7698 labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when
7699 she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how
7700 he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat
7701 there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom
7702 hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition;
7703 how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they,
7704 "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in"
7705 --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them
7706 rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home.
7707
7708 Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him
7709 were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung
7710 behind them, and informed of the great news.
7711
7712 Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be
7713 shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were
7714 bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and
7715 more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on
7716 Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday;
7717 but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as
7718 if she had passed through a wasting illness.
7719
7720 Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but
7721 could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or
7722 Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still
7723 about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas
7724 stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff
7725 Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found
7726 in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying
7727 to escape, perhaps.
7728
7729 About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to
7730 visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting
7731 talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge
7732 Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The
7733 Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him
7734 ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he
7735 thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said:
7736
7737 "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt.
7738 But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any
7739 more."
7740
7741 "Why?"
7742
7743 "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago,
7744 and triple-locked--and I've got the keys."
7745
7746 Tom turned as white as a sheet.
7747
7748 "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!"
7749
7750 The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face.
7751
7752 "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?"
7753
7754 "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!"
7755
7756
7757
7758 CHAPTER XXXIII
7759
7760 WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of
7761 men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well
7762 filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that
7763 bore Judge Thatcher.
7764
7765 When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in
7766 the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground,
7767 dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing
7768 eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer
7769 of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own
7770 experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but
7771 nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now,
7772 which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated
7773 before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day
7774 he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast.
7775
7776 Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The
7777 great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through,
7778 with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock
7779 formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had
7780 wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if
7781 there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been
7782 useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could
7783 not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had
7784 only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass
7785 the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily
7786 one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices
7787 of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The
7788 prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to
7789 catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their
7790 claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at
7791 hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages,
7792 builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had
7793 broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone,
7794 wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop
7795 that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a
7796 clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop
7797 was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the
7798 foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the
7799 Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the
7800 massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be
7801 falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of
7802 history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the
7803 thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did
7804 this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for
7805 this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object
7806 to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and
7807 many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch
7808 the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that
7809 pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the
7810 wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of
7811 the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it.
7812
7813 Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked
7814 there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and
7815 hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all
7816 sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as
7817 satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the
7818 hanging.
7819
7820 This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to
7821 the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely
7822 signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a
7823 committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail
7824 around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample
7825 his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five
7826 citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself
7827 there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names
7828 to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently
7829 impaired and leaky water-works.
7830
7831 The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have
7832 an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the
7833 Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned
7834 there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he
7835 wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said:
7836
7837 "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but
7838 whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben
7839 you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you
7840 hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and
7841 told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always
7842 told me we'd never get holt of that swag."
7843
7844 "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern
7845 was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you
7846 was to watch there that night?"
7847
7848 "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I
7849 follered Injun Joe to the widder's."
7850
7851 "YOU followed him?"
7852
7853 "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him,
7854 and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it
7855 hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right."
7856
7857 Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only
7858 heard of the Welshman's part of it before.
7859
7860 "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question,
7861 "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon
7862 --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom."
7863
7864 "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!"
7865
7866 "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on
7867 the track of that money again?"
7868
7869 "Huck, it's in the cave!"
7870
7871 Huck's eyes blazed.
7872
7873 "Say it again, Tom."
7874
7875 "The money's in the cave!"
7876
7877 "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?"
7878
7879 "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go
7880 in there with me and help get it out?"
7881
7882 "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not
7883 get lost."
7884
7885 "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the
7886 world."
7887
7888 "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--"
7889
7890 "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll
7891 agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I
7892 will, by jings."
7893
7894 "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?"
7895
7896 "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?"
7897
7898 "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days,
7899 now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could."
7900
7901 "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go,
7902 Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me
7903 know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the
7904 skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You
7905 needn't ever turn your hand over."
7906
7907 "Less start right off, Tom."
7908
7909 "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little
7910 bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these
7911 new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's
7912 the time I wished I had some when I was in there before."
7913
7914 A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who
7915 was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles
7916 below "Cave Hollow," Tom said:
7917
7918 "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the
7919 cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see
7920 that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's
7921 one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now."
7922
7923 They landed.
7924
7925 "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out
7926 of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it."
7927
7928 Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly
7929 marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said:
7930
7931 "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this
7932 country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be
7933 a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to
7934 run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it
7935 quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course
7936 there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it.
7937 Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?"
7938
7939 "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?"
7940
7941 "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way."
7942
7943 "And kill them?"
7944
7945 "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom."
7946
7947 "What's a ransom?"
7948
7949 "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and
7950 after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them.
7951 That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the
7952 women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and
7953 awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take
7954 your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers
7955 --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and
7956 after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and
7957 after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd
7958 turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books."
7959
7960 "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate."
7961
7962 "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and
7963 circuses and all that."
7964
7965 By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom
7966 in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel,
7967 then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps
7968 brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through
7969 him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of
7970 clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the
7971 flame struggle and expire.
7972
7973 The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and
7974 gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently
7975 entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the
7976 "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not
7977 really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet
7978 high. Tom whispered:
7979
7980 "Now I'll show you something, Huck."
7981
7982 He held his candle aloft and said:
7983
7984 "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on
7985 the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke."
7986
7987 "Tom, it's a CROSS!"
7988
7989 "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's
7990 where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!"
7991
7992 Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice:
7993
7994 "Tom, less git out of here!"
7995
7996 "What! and leave the treasure?"
7997
7998 "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain."
7999
8000 "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he
8001 died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here."
8002
8003 "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways
8004 of ghosts, and so do you."
8005
8006 Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his
8007 mind. But presently an idea occurred to him--
8008
8009 "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's
8010 ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!"
8011
8012 The point was well taken. It had its effect.
8013
8014 "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that
8015 cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box."
8016
8017 Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended.
8018 Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the
8019 great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result.
8020 They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with
8021 a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some
8022 bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there
8023 was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in
8024 vain. Tom said:
8025
8026 "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the
8027 cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on
8028 the ground."
8029
8030 They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged.
8031 Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said:
8032
8033 "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the
8034 clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now,
8035 what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to
8036 dig in the clay."
8037
8038 "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation.
8039
8040 Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches
8041 before he struck wood.
8042
8043 "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?"
8044
8045 Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and
8046 removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock.
8047 Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he
8048 could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to
8049 explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended
8050 gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to
8051 the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and
8052 exclaimed:
8053
8054 "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!"
8055
8056 It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern,
8057 along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two
8058 or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish
8059 well soaked with the water-drip.
8060
8061 "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with
8062 his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!"
8063
8064 "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe,
8065 but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake
8066 it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box."
8067
8068 It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward
8069 fashion, but could not carry it conveniently.
8070
8071 "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day
8072 at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of
8073 fetching the little bags along."
8074
8075 The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross
8076 rock.
8077
8078 "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck.
8079
8080 "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we
8081 go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our
8082 orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies."
8083
8084 "What orgies?"
8085
8086 "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to
8087 have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's
8088 getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we
8089 get to the skiff."
8090
8091 They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily
8092 out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the
8093 skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got
8094 under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting
8095 cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark.
8096
8097 "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the
8098 widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it
8099 and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it
8100 where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till
8101 I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute."
8102
8103 He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two
8104 small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started
8105 off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the
8106 Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move
8107 on, the Welshman stepped out and said:
8108
8109 "Hallo, who's that?"
8110
8111 "Huck and Tom Sawyer."
8112
8113 "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting.
8114 Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not
8115 as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?"
8116
8117 "Old metal," said Tom.
8118
8119 "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool
8120 away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the
8121 foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But
8122 that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!"
8123
8124 The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about.
8125
8126 "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'."
8127
8128 Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being
8129 falsely accused:
8130
8131 "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing."
8132
8133 The Welshman laughed.
8134
8135 "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you
8136 and the widow good friends?"
8137
8138 "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway."
8139
8140 "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?"
8141
8142 This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he
8143 found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room.
8144 Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed.
8145
8146 The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any
8147 consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the
8148 Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor,
8149 and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow
8150 received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such
8151 looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt
8152 Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head
8153 at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr.
8154 Jones said:
8155
8156 "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and
8157 Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry."
8158
8159 "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys."
8160
8161 She took them to a bedchamber and said:
8162
8163 "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes
8164 --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks,
8165 Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you.
8166 Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough."
8167
8168 Then she left.
8169
8170
8171
8172 CHAPTER XXXIV
8173
8174 HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't
8175 high from the ground."
8176
8177 "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?"
8178
8179 "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't
8180 going down there, Tom."
8181
8182 "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care
8183 of you."
8184
8185 Sid appeared.
8186
8187 "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon.
8188 Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about
8189 you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?"
8190
8191 "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this
8192 blow-out about, anyway?"
8193
8194 "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time
8195 it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they
8196 helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something,
8197 if you want to know."
8198
8199 "Well, what?"
8200
8201 "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people
8202 here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a
8203 secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows
8204 --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was
8205 bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret
8206 without Huck, you know!"
8207
8208 "Secret about what, Sid?"
8209
8210 "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones
8211 was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will
8212 drop pretty flat."
8213
8214 Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way.
8215
8216 "Sid, was it you that told?"
8217
8218 "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough."
8219
8220 "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and
8221 that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the
8222 hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean
8223 things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones.
8224 There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and
8225 helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if
8226 you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!"
8227
8228 Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a
8229 dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room,
8230 after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr.
8231 Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the
8232 honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was
8233 another person whose modesty--
8234
8235 And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the
8236 adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the
8237 surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and
8238 effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However,
8239 the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many
8240 compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the
8241 nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely
8242 intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze
8243 and everybody's laudations.
8244
8245 The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have
8246 him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start
8247 him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said:
8248
8249 "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich."
8250
8251 Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept
8252 back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But
8253 the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it:
8254
8255 "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of
8256 it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a
8257 minute."
8258
8259 Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a
8260 perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied.
8261
8262 "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any
8263 making of that boy out. I never--"
8264
8265 Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly
8266 did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon
8267 the table and said:
8268
8269 "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!"
8270
8271 The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke
8272 for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom
8273 said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of
8274 interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the
8275 charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said:
8276
8277 "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it
8278 don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm
8279 willing to allow."
8280
8281 The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve
8282 thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one
8283 time before, though several persons were there who were worth
8284 considerably more than that in property.
8285
8286
8287
8288 CHAPTER XXXV
8289
8290 THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a
8291 mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a
8292 sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked
8293 about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the
8294 citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every
8295 "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was
8296 dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for
8297 hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic
8298 men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were
8299 courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that
8300 their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were
8301 treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be
8302 regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and
8303 saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up
8304 and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village
8305 paper published biographical sketches of the boys.
8306
8307 The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge
8308 Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had
8309 an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day
8310 in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got
8311 --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A
8312 dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in
8313 those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that
8314 matter.
8315
8316 Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no
8317 commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When
8318 Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her
8319 whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded
8320 grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that
8321 whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine
8322 outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that
8323 was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to
8324 breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky
8325 thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he
8326 walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight
8327 off and told Tom about it.
8328
8329 Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some
8330 day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the
8331 National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school
8332 in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or
8333 both.
8334
8335 Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow
8336 Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into
8337 it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he
8338 could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and
8339 brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had
8340 not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know
8341 for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use
8342 napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to
8343 church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in
8344 his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of
8345 civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot.
8346
8347 He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up
8348 missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in
8349 great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched
8350 high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third
8351 morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads
8352 down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found
8353 the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some
8354 stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with
8355 his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of
8356 rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and
8357 happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing,
8358 and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and
8359 took a melancholy cast. He said:
8360
8361 "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't
8362 work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to
8363 me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just
8364 at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to
8365 thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them
8366 blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air
8367 git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set
8368 down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a
8369 cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and
8370 sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in
8371 there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by
8372 a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's
8373 so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it."
8374
8375 "Well, everybody does that way, Huck."
8376
8377 "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't
8378 STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't
8379 take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I
8380 got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do
8381 everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got
8382 to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in
8383 my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she
8384 wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor
8385 scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and
8386 injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a
8387 woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's
8388 going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT,
8389 Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's
8390 just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead
8391 all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and
8392 I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into
8393 all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take
8394 my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not
8395 many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable
8396 hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder."
8397
8398 "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if
8399 you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it."
8400
8401 "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long
8402 enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed
8403 smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and
8404 I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a
8405 cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to
8406 come up and spile it all!"
8407
8408 Tom saw his opportunity--
8409
8410 "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning
8411 robber."
8412
8413 "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?"
8414
8415 "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you
8416 into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know."
8417
8418 Huck's joy was quenched.
8419
8420 "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?"
8421
8422 "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a
8423 pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up
8424 in the nobility--dukes and such."
8425
8426 "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me
8427 out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?"
8428
8429 "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people
8430 say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in
8431 it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't."
8432
8433 Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally
8434 he said:
8435
8436 "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if
8437 I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom."
8438
8439 "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the
8440 widow to let up on you a little, Huck."
8441
8442 "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of
8443 the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd
8444 through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?"
8445
8446 "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation
8447 to-night, maybe."
8448
8449 "Have the which?"
8450
8451 "Have the initiation."
8452
8453 "What's that?"
8454
8455 "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's
8456 secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and
8457 all his family that hurts one of the gang."
8458
8459 "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you."
8460
8461 "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at
8462 midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted
8463 house is the best, but they're all ripped up now."
8464
8465 "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom."
8466
8467 "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with
8468 blood."
8469
8470 "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than
8471 pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be
8472 a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon
8473 she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet."
8474
8475
8476
8477 CONCLUSION
8478
8479 SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it
8480 must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming
8481 the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he
8482 knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he
8483 writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can.
8484
8485 Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are
8486 prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the
8487 story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they
8488 turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that
8489 part of their lives at present.
8490
8491
8492
8493
8494
8495 End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Adventures of Tom Sawyer, Complete
8496 by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
8497
8498 *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TOM SAWYER ***
8499
8500 ***** This file should be named 74.txt or 74.zip *****
8501 This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
8502 http://www.gutenberg.net/7/74/
8503
8504 Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was update by Jose
8505 Menendez.
8506
8507
8508 Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
8509 will be renamed.
8510
8511 Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
8512 one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
8513 (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
8514 permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
8515 set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
8516 copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
8517 protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
8518 Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
8519 charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
8520 do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
8521 rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
8522 such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
8523 research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
8524 practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
8525 subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
8526 redistribution.
8527
8528
8529
8530 *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
8531
8532 THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
8533 PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
8534
8535 To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
8536 distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
8537 (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
8538 Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
8539 Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
8540 http://gutenberg.net/license).
8541
8542
8543 Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
8544 electronic works
8545
8546 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
8547 electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
8548 and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
8549 (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
8550 the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
8551 all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
8552 If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
8553 Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
8554 terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
8555 entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
8556
8557 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
8558 used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
8559 agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
8560 things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
8561 even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
8562 paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
8563 Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
8564 and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
8565 works. See paragraph 1.E below.
8566
8567 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
8568 or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
8569 Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
8570 collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
8571 individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
8572 located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
8573 copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
8574 works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
8575 are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
8576 Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
8577 freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
8578 this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
8579 the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
8580 keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
8581 Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
8582
8583 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
8584 what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
8585 a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
8586 the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
8587 before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
8588 creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
8589 Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
8590 the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
8591 States.
8592
8593 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
8594
8595 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
8596 access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
8597 whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
8598 phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
8599 Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
8600 copied or distributed:
8601
8602 This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
8603 almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
8604 re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
8605 with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
8606
8607 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
8608 from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
8609 posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
8610 and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
8611 or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
8612 with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
8613 work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
8614 through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
8615 Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
8616 1.E.9.
8617
8618 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
8619 with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
8620 must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
8621 terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
8622 to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
8623 permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
8624
8625 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
8626 License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
8627 work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
8628
8629 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
8630 electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
8631 prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
8632 active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
8633 Gutenberg-tm License.
8634
8635 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
8636 compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
8637 word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
8638 distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
8639 "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
8640 posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net),
8641 you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
8642 copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
8643 request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
8644 form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
8645 License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
8646
8647 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
8648 performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
8649 unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
8650
8651 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
8652 access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
8653 that
8654
8655 - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
8656 the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
8657 you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
8658 owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
8659 has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
8660 Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
8661 must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
8662 prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
8663 returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
8664 sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
8665 address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
8666 the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
8667
8668 - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
8669 you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
8670 does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
8671 License. You must require such a user to return or
8672 destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
8673 and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
8674 Project Gutenberg-tm works.
8675
8676 - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
8677 money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
8678 electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
8679 of receipt of the work.
8680
8681 - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
8682 distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
8683
8684 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
8685 electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
8686 forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
8687 both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
8688 Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
8689 Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
8690
8691 1.F.
8692
8693 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
8694 effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
8695 public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
8696 collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
8697 works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
8698 "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
8699 corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
8700 property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
8701 computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
8702 your equipment.
8703
8704 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
8705 of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
8706 Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
8707 Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
8708 Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
8709 liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
8710 fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
8711 LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
8712 PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
8713 TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
8714 LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
8715 INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
8716 DAMAGE.
8717
8718 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
8719 defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
8720 receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
8721 written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
8722 received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
8723 your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
8724 the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
8725 refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
8726 providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
8727 receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
8728 is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
8729 opportunities to fix the problem.
8730
8731 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
8732 in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
8733 WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
8734 WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
8735
8736 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
8737 warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
8738 If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
8739 law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
8740 interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
8741 the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
8742 provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
8743
8744 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
8745 trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
8746 providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
8747 with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
8748 promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
8749 harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
8750 that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
8751 or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
8752 work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
8753 Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
8754
8755
8756 Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
8757
8758 Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
8759 electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
8760 including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
8761 because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
8762 people in all walks of life.
8763
8764 Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
8765 assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
8766 goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
8767 remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
8768 Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
8769 and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
8770 To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
8771 and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
8772 and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
8773
8774
8775 Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
8776 Foundation
8777
8778 The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
8779 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
8780 state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
8781 Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
8782 number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
8783 http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
8784 Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
8785 permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
8786
8787 The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
8788 Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
8789 throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
8790 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
8791 business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
8792 information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
8793 page at http://pglaf.org
8794
8795 For additional contact information:
8796 Dr. Gregory B. Newby
8797 Chief Executive and Director
8798 gbnewby@pglaf.org
8799
8800
8801 Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
8802 Literary Archive Foundation
8803
8804 Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
8805 spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
8806 increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
8807 freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
8808 array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
8809 ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
8810 status with the IRS.
8811
8812 The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
8813 charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
8814 States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
8815 considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
8816 with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
8817 where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
8818 SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
8819 particular state visit http://pglaf.org
8820
8821 While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
8822 have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
8823 against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
8824 approach us with offers to donate.
8825
8826 International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
8827 any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
8828 outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
8829
8830 Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
8831 methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
8832 ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
8833 donations. To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
8834
8835
8836 Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
8837 works.
8838
8839 Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
8840 concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
8841 with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
8842 Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
8843
8844
8845 Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
8846 editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
8847 unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
8848 keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
8849
8850
8851 Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
8852
8853 http://www.gutenberg.net
8854
8855 This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
8856 including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
8857 Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
8858 subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.